Kdtic: NATO, The Subjective Alliance

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 208

NATO, the Subjective Alliance

The Debate Over the Future


Robert A. Levine
kDTIC
HAP 111Q3
Aff.vd hw pOWli z~mowf
4o
m9
%emerm
Th research described in this report was supported by The
Ford Foundation, the Carnegie Corporation, and The RAND
Corporation using its own research funds.
ISBN: 0-8330-0885-4
The RAND Publication Series: The Report is the principal
( publication documenting and transmitting RAND's major
research findings and final research results. The RAND Note
, ( reports other outputs of sponsored research for general
distribution. Publications of The RAND Corporation do not
necessarily reflect the opinions or policies of the sponsors of
RAND research.
Copyright 0 1988
The RAND Corporation
Published by The RAND Corporation
1700 Main Street, P.O. Box 2138, Santa Monica, CA 90406-2138
J_
R-3607-FF/CC/RC
NATO, the Subjective Alliance
The Debate Over the Future
Robert A. Levine
April 1988
Supported by
The Ford Foundation
The Carnegie Corporation
RAND
PREFACE
This report is part of a project entitled "Still the Arms Debate," sup-
ported by The Fo 0"FdrFounation, the Carnegie Corporation, and The
RAND Corporation. This report--receiyed additional assistance from
the Atlantic Institute for International Affairs. It-nalyzes the range
of differing views on national and international security policy in the
1980s. The questions asked are: What are the issues over which those
who debate arms policy in he 1980s differ? Wh4Eogically, not
psychologically or politically-o they differ? How have these differ-
ences developed from the debates of the 1960s? The policy objective of
the project is to increase understanding of the premises and lines of
reasoning that cause people to disagree and, by improving the debate,
to improve the making of security policy in the United States and
other Western democracies where the debate matters.
The long-run antecedent for the project is the author's 1963 book,
The Arms Debate,
1
which asked the same questions a quarter of a cen-
tury ago. The report is the third of three, which together will form the
basis of a new volume, Still the Arms Debate. The first report was
entitled The Arms Debate and the Third World: Have We Learned
From Vietnam?
2
The second was The Strategic Arms Debate.
3
In addi-
tion to those reports, a paper published by the UCLA Center for Inter-
national and Strategic Affairs, "The SDI Debate as a Continuation of
History," discussed a current central manifestation of the debate over
nuclear weapons policy and arms control.
4
'Robert A. Levine, The Arms Debate, Harvard University Press, Cambridge, 1963.
2
Robert A. Levine, The Arms Debate and the Third World. Have We Learned From
Vietnam? The RAND Corporation, R-3523-FF/CC/RC, May 1987.
3
Robert A. Levine, The Strategic Nuclear Debate, The RAND Corporation,
R-3565-FF/CC/RC, October 1987.
4Robert A. Levine, "The SDI Debate as a Continuation of History," CISA Working
Paper No. 55, Center for International and Strategic Affairs, University of California, for
Los Angeles, March 1986.
Justifioation
ccV,
Availability Codes
i- ' vail and/or '
-Dist $peo18a .
,-ii i , . r .2 .
II llnii I I "ill= .= m Ini l i i i
r(
SUMMARY
NATO, the North Atlantic Treaty Organization, is an alliance
formed in 1948 and armed in the early 1950s in reaction to a perceived
military and political threat to Western Europe from the Soviet Union.
In the intervening three and a half decades, the perception of the
threat has changed: The fear of direct military aggression has
lessened, and Alliance concerns have centered on subtler Soviet pres-
sures to drive the United States out of Europe and exploit Warsaw
Pact military preponderance to gain political and economic ends in
Western Europe. NATO has countered the Pact's conventional weight
as well as the Soviet nuclear threat with nuclear deterrence based on
the coupling of NATO defenses to U.S. strategic nuclear forces.
As the central fear has shifted away from direct aggression, Alliance
debates have increasingly been based on perceptions: perceptions of
the objectives and strategies of the Soviets, but, perhaps even more
important, perceptions by the allies of one another. A strong NATO
has been the chief counterweight to the Soviet presence, and this
strength has depended on the mutual satisfaction of the needs per-
ceived by Alliance members. In particular, the key role of the Ameri-
can nuclear deterrent has led Europeans to focus on ensuring that the
U.S. commitment to their defense remains strong; Americans have
stressed the maintenance of this commitment while reducing the risks
of having to use nuclear weapons to implement it. The resulting reas-
surances and recriminations define the "subjective alliance" in the title
of this report.
Basic to the debate has been the perception of a Soviet opponent
that although it has used varying tactics has pursued a constant set of
hostile objectives and a constant strategy of exploiting Alliance
weaknesses. Suddenly in the mid-1980s, however, this constancy has
been thrown into question by the new Soviet leader, Mikhail Gor-
bachev. Gorbachev has made radical changes, at least in Soviet tactics;
a central question for debate in the West is whether he has also
4 changed Soviet objectives, moving away from hostility and toward
mutual accommodation, and if so, whether it (or he) can last.
Whatever the degree of Soviet change, however, it has begun to
transmute the NATO debate, as internal concerns adapt to modifica-
tions in the external environment that spawned the Alliance. Some of
these internal changes have been traumatic and have led to strong
recriminations within NATO. The future of the Alliance itself has
been questioned, but this report predicts that it will survive in much its
V . . .
vi
current state, at least until the Soviet Union proves itself to be a very
different entity from that of the last 40 years. The report's normative
conclusions are that NATO's survival is crucial to European stability
and Western security and that carefully considered arms control agree-
ments between the Alliance and the Warsaw Pact, which now may be
possible, can enhance both.
The schools of thought in the NATO debate are divided by the
Atlantic Ocean, but neither West Europeans nor Americans form a
tight-knit grouping around a unified set of viewpoints. The report
divides officials and analysts in each of the two regions into a major
and a minor school in terms of influence; and each major school covers
a broad range of views. Indeed, European and American views overlap
substantially, and the overlap is increased by "resonance," the attempt
to strengthen Alliance cohesion by accepting partner members' posi-
tions that might have otherwise been opposed. Nonetheless, going-in
standpoints are necessarily very different between Europeans and
Americans. Europeans interpret self-preservation as including protection
of their lives and civilizations from conventional conflict that could be
more destructive than World War II and from nuclear holocaust, and also
from Soviet domination; Americans feel threatened mainly by the poten-
tial escalation of nuclear warfare to their homeland, but they recognize a
vital stake in Western Europe. These different interests lead to a dif-
ferent choice of salient issues, and ultimately to different policy choices.
In particular, the West European concern about the strength of the
American commitment, a largely political issue, is translated by the
Americans into worry about the military side of the same coin, the
"threshold" level at which nuclear weapons will have to be used to avoid
conventional defeat. These differences are reinforced by a European his-
torical and philosophical tendency to think of international strategies in
political terms, whereas American policymakers lean toward the more
directly military.
The major European school of thought is:
The Couplers, which includes the governments of all European
NATO members in the late 1980s, and major segments of the
opposition parties at least in the three major ones, France, Great
Britain, and the Federal Republic of Germany. The Couplers'
defining concern is the continued coupling of the U.S. nuclear
deterrent to the defense of the Alliance. Since the early 1970s,
the onset of "strategic parity" between the United States and the
Soviet Union has created doubts in Europe about America's will-
ingness to honor its commitment to European defense, with
nuclear weapons if necessary. More recently, these doubts have
if ". ,
Vi
been exacerbated by what many Europeans have seen as the
erratic behavior of American presidents-first, President Carter's
inconstancy about the neutron bomb, then President Reagan's
yawing from the "Evil Empire" speech to the surprise of SDI,
through the Libyan raid, to the second surprise, his plunge into
negotiations with Gorbachev at Reykjavik without previous con-
sultation with his allies.
The culmination for many Couplers was the "zero-zero" treaty,
which did away with all land-based intermediate-range
(500-5,000 kilometer) missiles on both sides. Since the late
1970s, European NATO members had been counting on the
Europe-based Intermediate-Range Nuclear Force (INF) to fill a
gap in the "flexible response" chain of deterrence. To mollify
political opposition to INF within member nations, however, in
1981 NATO proposed the zeroing out of intermediate missiles on
both sides if the Soviets would agree. The proposal was made in
the sure belief that Brezhnev would not agree; he didn't, but Gor-
bachev did, to the shock of the Alliance. Although the treaty
later gained general acceptance, at least as a fait accompli, the
initial agreement made by the Reagan administration without
consulting the allies had a traumatic effect on the perceptions of
West Europeans, many of whom saw it as the first slide down the
"slippery slope" of full denuclearization
and removal of the Amer-
ican deterrent. One result of this trauma has been increasing
doubt on the part of some Couplers as to the reliability of the
U.S. commitment, leading to symbolic moves toward a European
grouping, either as a stronger "pillar" for NATO or as a possible
long-range substitute. Increased Franco-German security
cooperation has been seen by some as the core of such a new
grouping, but differing national interests have kept this coopera-
tion largely symbolic. In any case, not all German Couplers, and
few in Britain, share either the fears of U.S. decoupling or the
need to grasp at a potential European substitute.
On more strictly military issues, the Couplers have understood
American fears of setting the conventional-nuclear threshold too
low, with NATO conventional capabilities so meager that, if the
Soviets were to attack, the president of the United States would
be faced with an almost-immediate decision to accept Alliance
defeat or escalate to nuclear weapons. Most Couplers favor rais-
ing the threshold, if for no other reason than the fear that an
immediate decision by the president might be a decision to give
up Europe to preserve the American homeland. Others, however,
. m -
viii
counter with the possibility that too high a threshold might sig-
nify decreased American willingness to go nuclear at all, thereby
weakening the deterrent. In any case, most West Europeans
have favored in the abstract the strengthening of conventional
capabilities, although no governments have been willing to raise
necessary budgets substantially. The Europeans put less weight
than the Americans on potential technological remedies to the
conventional imbalance, or on "deep" strategies striking at the
enemy's rear. Some Couplers worry that the deep strategies may
smack of NATO offensive intentions inconsistent with a defen-
sive alliance, or that they might otherwise provoke the Soviets;
this is particularly true among West Germans who are aware of
continued latent fear of German aggression.
Indeed, although the Couplers tend to think as Europeans in
terms of their concerns and their approaches, national differences
among France, Britain, and Germany, as well as the smaller
members, are also visible on several issues.
The French act more self-sufficiently than the others, enjoy-
ing general voter support for maintenance of their com-
pletely independent nuclear force and their refusal to rejoin
NATO's integrated military structure. In addition, as philo-
sophes who tend to take intellectual constructs to their logi-
cal ends, the French, more than other European NATO
members, fear the effect of the zero-zero agreement on U.S.
decoupling. They have also feared decoupling longer than
any one else, long before zero-zero or strategic parity; that is
a major reason why de Gaulle created the independent deter-
rent. One result of recent acute decoupling fears is that the
French have been ardent suitors for German defense
cooperation. French guardianship of their own freedom of
action, however, has made them unwilling to give the Ger-
mans absolute guarantees of mutual action against attack on
Germany, although this may be changing. Nor have the
French been able to wean the Germans from the integrated
military structure, which would be necessary were NATO to
move from its U.S.-dependent Atlantic orientation to a more
purely European Franco-German core. In any case, actual
French military policy has differed from announced philoso-
phy; in unofficial ways, the French have continued military
cooperation with the rest of the Alliance, and they are
counted upon in case of Soviet attack.
v4
ix
The British are far more relaxed about the American com-
mitment than are the French. They see a possible gradual
weakening of the commitment, and a need in any case for a
strengthening of the European pillar, but these are long-run
evolutions that will be affected by ongoing events. Chief
among these events in the late 1980s have been the changes
in Soviet policy brought about by Gorbachev, and many Brit-
ish Couplers take them quite seriously, believing that it is
Soviet rather than American changes that may transform the
character of the Alliance. Unlike the French, the British are
not united over defense policy. Although the Conservative
government is firmly Coupler, as is a small portion of the
Labour Party on the left and much of the smaller
Liberal/Social Democratic group in the middle, the
majority-supported official party position of Labour opposes
NATO nuclear deterrence and defense.
The West Germans are more divided than either of the other
two major European NATO nations. A large portion of the
opposition Socialist Party-whether it is a majority of the
party is not clear-takes a position similar to that of the
British Labour Party, and the small Green Party is more
extreme. In addition, the Coupler establishment itself, made
up of the government coalition plus the more moderate por-
tion of the Socialists, covers a broader range of views than in
France or Britain. The right wing of the establishment com-
bines French fears of American decoupling with their own
deep suspicions of Gorbachev's motives. Other Couplers are
far more relaxed, on the British model, and have welcomed
the zero-zero agreement. What the German Couplers come
together on, however, is the Federal Republic's continued
dependence on the American nuclear deterrent and the con-
sequent continued commitment to NATO. For this reason,
although fears of U.S. decoupling push Germany toward
greater defense cooperation with France, the dilemma of
NATO military integration with its American connection,
versus nonintegration with its French connection, has pre-
cluded moves by the Germans to a more than symbolic con-
nection with the French. Another German consensus, based
on the existence of East Germany with its common language
and history, is a substantially stronger concern with the
nations of the Soviet bloc than is evidenced in the rest of
Western Europe. The worry of some other Europeans,
ILI
particularly French, that the Federal Republic's interest in
the East might draw it away from NATO is denied by Ger-
man Couplers, who are far more realistic than implied by
French fears of German nostalgia for Mitteleuropa.
Some of the fears and inconsistencies of the Couplers can be traced
back to the felt political threat of the smaller European school of
thought to the left. Although it is not powerful electorally, the anti-
INF demonstrations mounted by this school in the early 1980s affected
the beliefs of Coupler governments about what they can and cannot do.
* The Removers are the European peace movement, no longer
closely connected, as they were in the early 1960s, with the
American peace movement. The connection has attenuated
because the American movement emphasizes getting rid of U.S.
and Soviet strategic nuclear weapons, whereas the Removers,
parallel to the European mainstream Couplers, concentrate on
European issues. The defining characteristic of the Removers is
their desire to remove nuclear weapons from Europe. The radical
end of the school, including German church groups, the German
Greens, and the left wings of the British Labour Party and some
parties in the Low Countries and Scandinavia (the school is
insignificant in France), also want to get the United States out of
Europe and do away with NATO. The moderates, however,
including the leadership and the majority of the British Labour
Party and that indeterminate portion of the German Socialists
not counted among the Couplers, are interested in future elec-
toral success, for which they feel continued endorsement of
NATO is necessary. Labour, for example, contested the 1987
British election on a platform that called for doing away with the
British nuclear deterrent, with the savings to go toward
strengthening the British conventional contribution to NATO.
They also wanted to remove all U.S. nuclear weapons from the
United Kingdom, but contended that this was consistent with
Alliance membership. In Germany, the Socialist Party, striking a
balance between its Removers and Couplers, did not advocate
doing away with nuclear deterrence in Europe, but did promise
that, if elected, it would remove American INF missiles from
German soil. The platform added a weaker "request" for removal
of Soviet missiles, and the party was somewhat embarrassed
when the zero-zero agreement went beyond them and did away
with Soviet as well as American intermediate-range weapons. In
any case, the Socialists continued to endorse NATO, as well as
backing such militaristic devices as conscription.
xi
In addition to their negative antinuclear stance, the Removers set
forth a positive proposal for "defensive defenses" against Soviet
conventional attack. The central point of this concept is the sub-
stitution of in-place antitank defenses for NATO tank forces,
which could be used offensively against the Warsaw Pact.
Ironically, the American school of thought that corresponds most
closely to the European Removers of the left is mainly on the right end
of the U.S. political spectrum. It is far smaller in proportion to its
electorate than are the Removers, but like them it helps define the
bounds of the pro-NATO mainstream.
The Withdrawers want the United States to get out of NATO, or
at least to decrease its commitment sharply. The right-wing
Withdrawers, most of those in the school, base this in part on
traditional American isolationism, but in greater part on strong
anticommunism. They believe that the West Europeans are soft
on the Soviets, in part out of fear but also because they want to
profit from doing business with the East. The Withdrawers also
believe that the strong U.S. commitment to Europe dilutes Amer-
ican power, which should be devoted to the global anticommunist
mission of confronting the Soviets in parts of the world where
the danger is greater than in Europe. They also stress burden-
sharing, the belief that the Europeans should be doing more for
their own defense, relieving the United States of much of the
cost.
Many in the American mainstream emphasize burden-sharing,
and some also join the Withdrawers in the belief that the United
States should pay more attention to its global interests. Some
well-known Americans, notably former Secretary of State Henry
Kissinger and former National Security Advisor Zbigniew Brzez-
inski, have used these views as premises for recommending a
restructuring of NATO; consequently some European Couplers
lump them together with the American Withdrawers. There is a
sharp distinction, however- Far from advocating withdrawal from
NATO, Kissinger's and Brzezinski's centrist proposals are
designed to strengthen the Alliance for the long haul.
The Withdrawers of the right are joined by those few members of
the American peace movement on the left who pay any attention
to NATO. They do not share the anticommunism of the
rightists, but for other reasons having to do with reduction of the
danger of nuclear conflict starting from war in Europe, they join
in the withdrawal prescription. Also in the Withdrawer school
J,
mI
are some advocates of a strong Navy who believe that American
power worldwide should be sea- rather than land-based.
The mainstream American school covers a broad band of American
officials and analysts, including those who disagree strongly with one
another about such non-NATO matters of defense policy as strategic
nuclear weapons and policy for the Third World.
The Maintainers comprise the large majority of the Americans
who participate in the NATO debate. They are defined by their
desire to maintain the American commitment, including the ulti-
mate nuclear commitment, to the deterrence of Soviet attack
against Western Europe and to the defense of Europe if need be.
Although the Maintainers differ with one another on many
NATO-related matters, as well as disagreeing strongly on other
security issues, they come together on three propositions related
to the Alliance: first, that the conventional-nuclear threshold
should be kept as high as possible to preclude an American
president from having to make the choice between losing in
Europe or commencing nuclear war, second, to do this, NATO's
conventional capabilities should be increased (but how to pay for
it is difficult to say); and third, that the American commitment
to the Alliance is and should remain strong.
The first proposition concerning the high threshold, the Ameri-
can military analog to the European political focus on the U.S.
commitment, is particularly important to the Maintainers. They
do not want the commitment to NATO to draw the United
States into a premature nuclear war; they want NATO to be able
to defend itself conventionally well enough to avoid such a war,
or at least long enough to avoid an immediate nuclear decision.
To this end, the Maintainers pay a great deal of attention to the
way in which a war in Europe might be fought and the way the
threshold decision might be approached. From 1979 to 1987 they
debated, first about the role of INF in deterrence in Europe, and
then about the role of the INF-removing zero-zero agreement as
it might affect deterrence. Some Maintainers contend that
President Reagan's Strategic Defense Initiative (SDI) raises the
threshold, others disagree (as do most Couplers). A few suggest a
policy of No First Use of nuclear weapons by NATO; most feel
that so high a threshold for nuclear use would remove the neces-
sary nuclear element from deterrence of Soviet conventional
attack. (Almost all European Couplers take the No First Use
policy more seriously than most Americans and are quite
1 m'-mm mkmI .,
frightened by the potential loss of deterrence.) The Maintainer
consensus re-forms, however, around No Early Use of nuclear
weapons, which is another term for a high threshold, the first
proposition.
The consensus also holds on the second proposition, increased
conventional capabilities, as the single most important contribu-
tor to the first. Most Maintainers are convinced that current
capabilities will allow little time between the onset of conven-
tional war in Europe and the nuclear decision, and they want to
improve matters. To this end, they stress the need for increased
contributions to conventional defense by the European members
of the Alliance. Even if this is achieved, however, few believe
that NATO will pay for conventional forces that will do more
than substantially delay a well-conceived Soviet attack. The
Maintainers, more than the Couplers, then turn to new technolo-
gies or "deep" strategies to right the balance. Here too, however,
doubts are strong. More recently, some hopes have been
expressed that perhaps conventional arms controls can help.
In spite of their doubts about conventional capabilities, the
Maintainers hold strongly to the third proposition, the continued
U.S. commitment to NATO. Even in the 1984 Senate debate
over the Nunn Amendment, which was an attempt to use the
threat of somewhat decreased American troop levels in Europe to
force greater European burden-sharing, Senator Nunn and others
proclaimed the continued U.S. commitment, no matter what.
And in the American debate before the signing of the 1987 zero-
zero agreement, a chief point made by the opponents was based
on transatlantic resonance: that regardless of the military facts
of INF, the West Europeans considered it essential to their secu-
rity and it therefore should not be negotiated away. The pro-
ponents of zero-zero took other steps to reassure the
Europeans-e.g., a House of Representatives resolution to con-
tinue existing American troop levels in Europe. Indeed, one of
the ironies of the zero-zero debate was that Kissinger, who a few
years previously had upset the Europeans with his proposals for
restructuring NATO, opposed the agreement on grounds that it
would disturb the Alliance. The earlier Kissinger proposal was
for some replacement by Europeans of American troops in
Europe, together with a concomitant increase in European
responsibilities. Brzezinski's proposal was similar. Both were
attempts to strengthen the Alliance; neither envisioned any
weakening of the ultimate American commitment to the defense,
xiv
including the nuclear defense, of Western Europe. And neither
has been taken very seriously by other Maintainers; and consid-
ering the eminence of their authors, that indicates general Main-
tainer satisfaction with the Alliance as it is.
The Kissinger and Brzezinski proposals may imply some con-
scious building of the "European pillar" of the Alliance, but as
Americans, the Maintainers tend to avoid explicit comment on
the European concept or the Franco-German version. Implicitly
some seem to welcome the burden-sharing implications of the pil-
lar, others to fear the potential weakening of the American tie
(and perhaps American dominance of NATO). One Maintainer
attitude, however, is based on negative resonance with some
Couplers: Some Europeans fear American abandonment, which
leads them to proposals for European substitution; some Ameri-
cans read these proposals and propose further withdrawals
because of the potential European substitutions.
In any case, although resonance, positive and negative, may blur the
differences between the major American and European schools, the dis-
tinction between the Maintainers and the Couplers remains quite clear.
In four key areas:
" The Maintainers might accept a strengthened European pillar,
but most would prefer to keep the Alliance as it is; the Couplers
want to begin serious movement toward a pillar and perhaps a
parallel alliatlce within (or, in the extreme, even outside) NATO.
* The Maintainers want stronger conventional capabilities even if
it takes more money, particularly European money; the Couplers
fear that they may have to spend more.
" The Maintainers believe that nuclear deterrence is necessary but
dangerous, and they want to raise the threshold; the Couplers see
nuclear deterrence as basic to their security, but they are willing
to raise the threshold, at least in resonance to American desires,
if it doesn't cost too much.
* The Maintainers believe that the United States has worldwide
responsibilities; the Couplers are afraid of American diversion
from Europe.
In one area crucial to all the others, although a broad range of views
exists on both sides of the Atlantic, the differences do not divide the
Maintainers and the Couplers. The issue is the interpretation of
Soviet objectives and strategies. Before Gorbachev, views differed
( 'V
xv
widely; the differences have tended to carry over to the "new" USSR,
although their relative weights may have changed. On one end, before
Gorbachev, were the American and West European Sovietologists who
saw every Soviet move as a tactic to disrupt the Alliance or otherwise
gain the objective of dominating Europe by driving the United States
out. On the other end were those who believed that the Soviets were
willing to seek these objectives opportunistically, but that in recent
years their primary efforts had been simply to maintain their position
in Western Europe and, particularly, in their East European empire.
No Maintainer or Coupler Sovietologists were willing to attribute to
the Soviets any real desire to move toward a new, more stable, and bal-
anced equilibrium in Europe.
Although some doubts existed about Gorbachev's real departure
from this pattern, before and after he succeeded Chernenko, more
recently nobody has questioned that he is in fact different, and makes
a difference. For those who were suspicious before, the difference is
that of a brilliant new set of tactics, perhaps amounting to a new strat-
egy, and if we are not careful these tactics are likely to provide the
Soviets with far more success than in the past in reaching their Euro-
pean objectives. For those on the other end, it may be that the Soviets
have really changed their objectives, if not for all time at least for a
long enough foreseeable future to create a new, more comfortable, and
less armed balance in Europe. The emphasis must be on "may," how-
ever, nobody among the Maintainers or Couplers has been willing to
place a large bet on new Soviet good will, if for no other reason than
the substantial uncertainty, whatever Gorbachev's "real" objectives, as
to whether he can overcome internal obstacles to their achievement or,
indeed, whether he can last.
Divergent premises on the Soviet Union thus lead to conservative
and less divergent operational conclusions. Rather than bringing about
substantially new Western policies, the operational difference made by
Gorbachev is that the agenda the Soviets might agree to is seen as far
more open than ever before. This is accepted across the Maintainer-
Coupler spectrum. For the suspicious, new Soviet tactics are acting on
Western public opinion and politics to force it open; we must play
much more carefully than in the past. For the hopeful, we must
play-also carefully-because we might get what we asked for, as we
did in the case of zero-zero, which was, after all, a Western proposal.
The main new agenda concerns arms control. Zero-zero was the
first fruit of the new Soviet strategy, but zero-zero was unsatisfactory
enough for NATO-in the way it was conceived in 1981, the way it was
negotiated in 1987, and, for many, in its content as well-that it has
had major effects on Alliance attitudes toward the next arms control
Xvi
steps. The most important such effect commands a near-unanimous
consensus among Maintainers and Couplers. It is: be serious this time;
in both the strategic and the European arms control arenas, propose
only controls that we want.
Initial serious proposals for further controls within Europe have
begun to appear in NATO. Most debaters on both sides of the Atlantic
would prefer to stay away from additional European nuclear controls in
the near future, or to consider controls on the remaining shorter-range
weapons in the context of conventional arms controls; many still fear
the "slippery slope" to full denuclearization. Perhaps paradoxically,
because they are most concerned about denuclearization, the Germans
have suggested negotiations in the next lowest missile range, down to
100 kilometers. They argue that such missiles can only fall on Ger-
mans, East and West; more important they point to a heavy Soviet
preponderance in this category. In any case, they propose only a cut-
ting down, not a zeroing out. Unilaterally, the Alliance has begun to
examine its own post-zero-zero nuclear posture, including proposals for
replacing the INF missiles with sea- or air-launched missiles dedicated
to NATO and capable of reaching the Soviet Union.
Because of the tendency to stay away from new nuclear controls and
the belief that cutting back the nuclear deterrent in Europe makes the
conventional imbalance even more important, conventional controls
are being examined for their potential in assisting rebalance. One
implication of zero-zero has been more stress on the desirability of uni-
lateral strengthening of conventional capabilities, but nobody has
believed that additional resources substantial enough to make a major
difference would be forthcoming; most analysts agree that that would
take a major increase in the Soviet threat as perceived by Western
publics, and Gorbachev has provided just the opposite. Because of this
unlikelihood of unilateral increases, additional attention has been paid
to the possibility of rebalancing through negotiated NATO and Pact
conventional drawdowns, although some warn that we should not count
on arms control to achieve what we were unwilling to do ourselves.
Arms controls that could help achieve this objective, or even be accept-
able to NATO, would have to be highly asymmetrical, decreasing the
much larger forces on the Soviet side much more than those of the
Alliance. Senator Nunn has proposed a cut of 13 Soviet divisions in
return for two U.S. divisions; other studies have suggested that a 5:1
ratio (measured somewhat differently) was an appropriate breakeven
point, below which mutual decreases would actually exacerbate the
imbalance.
In any case, these analyses and calculations were just beginning, in
the wake of zero-zero.
i m m " l m m I m i mm mmmi-. ..
(
xvii
My own conclusions about NATO are that:
* Europe has been stable, and Western Europe secure, for a long
time, at least since the end of the Berlin crises of the early
1960s.
* Security and stability will be strongest if NATO remains
strong.
* Both the American and the European sides of the Alliance need
to avoid suspicions leading to cumulative negative resonance.
* The Gorbachev era may make possible substantial improve-
ments through arms control, but "trust" of the Soviets has
nothing to do with it. We should look for agreements that do
not depend on trust and that increase both Western security
and East-West stability.
The American electoral calendar is likely to make substantial new
arms control agreements difficult through 1988 and part of 1989.
Given NATO's record for headlong rushes in ill-thought-through direc-
tions, this will be fortunate-if the time is taken for Alliance con-
sideration of goals, strategies, and next steps, in what may well be a
new and even exhilarating era. New era or not, a strong NATO will be
the keystone to Western security for a long time to come.
4
I
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
Substantial assistance to this report and its author has been pro-
vided by RAND colleagues Charles Cooper, Keith Crane, Nanette
Gantz, James Hodges, Richard Neu, Alan Vick, and Kenneth Watman;
and at an earlier stage by Andrew Pierre of the Atlantic Institute for
International Affairs, Gregory Flynn of the Carnegie Endowment for
International Peace, and John Chipman of the International Institute
for Strategic Studies. They are not to blame for it, nor are the dozens
of American and European officials and analysts, many of whose writ-
ings are quoted within, who have been both subjects of the analysis and
advisors to the analyst.
xi,
41..
CONTENTS
PREFACE................................ ......... iii
SUMMARY....................................... v
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS.............................. xix
Section
I. INTRODUCTION............................... 1
Military and Political Perceptions...................3
Schools of Thought............................. 7
Issues...................................... 14
Themes..................................... 19
11. HISTORY.................................... 21
The 1950s: Initiation........................... 22
The 1960s: Reformulation....................... 23
The 1970s: Doubts............................ 26
III. THE COUPLERS............................... 34
Alliance Political Issues..........................35
Military Issues............................... 55
The Opponent................................ 72
Arms Control and Disarmament................... 81
Summary: Coupler Recommendations...............85
IV. THE REMOVERS.............................. 87
V. THE WITHDRAWERS.......................... 96
VI. THE MAINTAINERS........................... 104
Military Issues............................... 105
Alliance Political Issues......................... 126
The Opponent............................... 140
Arms Control and Disarmament................... 151
Summary: Maintainer Recommendations ............ 155
VII. EPILOG..................................... 157
Current Facts and Interpretations..................160
Adaptations................................. 167
Conclusion................................. 175
BIBLIOGRAPHY................................... 179
'.
1I
I. INTRODUCTION
I don't know what effect these men will have upon the
enemy, but, by God, they frighten me.
-attributed sometimes to the Duke of Wellington
and sometimes to George III
Arguments about logical consistency and conceptual neatness
become the currency for intra-alliance bargaining in a
manner which may exacerbate disagreement and transform
difference in emphasis to disputes about theological abso-
lutes. Fears abound that doctrinal positions have been
thrown up as camouflage for disengagement, decoupling, or
centralization of control. Thus NATO has at times been
absorbed in great debates of strategy in a manner which has
generated tensions of an order that the Russians have been
hard put to emulate.
-Johan Jorgen Hoist'
There are few objective truths about the North Atlantic Treaty
Organization-the Atlantic Alliance. One fact is that the Alliance was
armed in 1953 in response to what was seen as a substantial Soviet
military threat to Western Europe. That is history, however; although
the nations of the Alliance still believe the threat to exist, it has faded
and changed substantially over the intervening years. NATO today is
shaped primarily by the political needs of its member nations and by
the members' perceptions of the Soviet Union and of each other. For
British troops two centuries ago, and perhaps for NATO today too, as
Johan Hoist suggested some years before he became an active partici-
pant as Norwegian Defense Minister, it is not always clear who is most
frightened by which perceptions.
The Alliance is in this sense very much a subjective one, engaged to
a substantial degree in analyzing itself. A broad consensus (including
the author of this report) believe its continued existence to remain
essential to Western well-being and to world peace, because without
NATO the Soviets might still attempt to dominate Europe, militarily
or politically. But the military as well as the political shape of the
Alliance is based more on national and Alliance politics than on
imminent military threats.
1
Johan Jorgen Hoist, "Flexible Options in Alliance Strategy," in Johan J. Hoist and
Uwe Nerlich (eds.), Beyond Nuclear Deterrence, Crane, Russak and Co., New York, 1977,
pp. 267-268.
1I
I3
INIINII ~
l a
U ill h lllllhl~lI ~ mB~n l~l Nl~lUN . m. . -
2
This subjectivity leads to a debate over NATO's present policies and
future structure that is complex and quite difficult to follow. Issues in
the debate are mixtures of military and political factors; participants
are officials and analysts within the member nations.
2
In the last half
of the 1980s in particular, but more generally since at least the mid-
1970s, the confusions of the debate have led to some policies that
nobody liked even as compromises, and to intra-Alliance suspicions
and hostilities that have presented unnecessary threats to the organiza-
tion itself. The object of this study is to sort out the issues and the
participants and to analyze the premises and logic leading to varying
policy conclusions, not in order to evaluate which are "right" or
"wrong" but to make clearer than at present what the debaters disagree
about, and why. As changes in the Alliance accelerate, new postures
will be based on the response of old positions to new pressures. Better
understanding of underlying viewpoints may help direct change toward
the preservation of NATO's strengths and halt internal erosion based
on correctible misperceptions of the views of others.
The remainder of this Introduction enlarges upon the initial asser-
tion about military and political perceptions, sets forth the four
"schools of thought" into which the report divides the debaters for pur-
poses of detailed examination of opposing contentions, categorizes the
issues on which the schools agree or disagree, and concludes by outlin-
ing the several substantive themes of the report.
This introductory section is followed by a brief history of NATO
and thinking about NATO. The next four sections examine in detail
the views presented by the members of the schools of thought, to
extract premises and logic from the open written record. These four
sections analyze the underlying structure of the debate over the Alli-
ance, particularly as it has developed through the Intermediate-Range
Nuclear Force (INF) years, the period between NATO's 1979 "two-
track" decision to install the missiles of the INF in Europe while pro-
posing to negotiate them against similar Soviet weapons, and the 1987
agreement to remove both the INF and the Soviet force.
In the late 1980s, NATO may be beginning a major transformation,
largely induced by apparent extraordinary changes in its Soviet and
Warsaw Pact opponents, as symbolized by the 1987 agreement. Rather
than trying to capture these changes in mid-flight, the final section
provides an epilog, describing some of the major directions of change
and suggesting the ways in which the debate and the Alliance may
Smove.
2
The material is drawn almost entirely from individual writings. Although the report
provides political context, the analysis concerns the logic of ideas, not the politics of
pressures and policy determination.
I ~ .& 4~'~) ~- %A 0-
33
MILITARY AND POLITICAL PERCEPTIONS
NATO started as a fairly simple concept. It was created in the late
19409 to enable "us"-the West, clearly led by the Marshall Plan and
military big brother the United States-to resist aggression by
"them"-Stalin's USSR. Such aggression may or may not have been a
real possibility, but it most certainly was a real fear in Western
Europe. The fear was based on the military and political hegemony
the Soviet Union had imposed on Eastern Europe, reinforced by the
Berlin blockade, and soon put by the North Korean attack on South
Korea into terms of very concrete possibilities of military invasion of
Western Europe, perhaps by Soviet proxies. NATO was thus initially
presented with a conceptually simple problem, mostly military
(although the role of recently-Nazi Germany presented intra-Alliance
political problems from the start) and only two-sided. And, almost
since the beginning of the Alliance, the explicit solution to the problem
has involved both conventional and nuclear military power, with
nuclear weapons being the ultimate sanction against superior Soviet
conventional forces as well as Soviet nuclear threats.
Forty years after the creation of NATO, and thirty-five after the
decision to man and equip it as a multi-nation armed alliance, the fear
of direct military attack by the Soviets has almost faded, but it has not
been dismissed completely. The Soviet capability for such an attack,
conventional or nuclear or both, still exists; were all Western forces
opposed to such aggression to disappear or the ultimate nuclear sanc-
tion to be withdrawn, the attack or its more likely Platonic political
shadow, Soviet domination of West Europe without actual invasion,
could again be seen as a major danger.
The danger is not inherent in geography or political economy.
Achieving a zero fear of the Soviet Union by Western Europeans is
possible; such a change is not unprecedented. Canada, for example,
does not fear the overwhelming military might of the United States,
nor do the French worry about a German attack. In terms of a mil-
lenium of accumulated European history that is no less remarkable
than would be a peaceful and permeable border between East and West
Europe say 20 years from now. Were this to come to pass, there would
be no more perceived need for the West to resist Soviet political pres-
sure than there is for Canada to mount a military defense against the
"American Way," or for France or Germany to bow to the other. And
there would be no need for the Western military alliance; NATO would
probably disappear.
That time is not yet; perhaps it never will be. Throughout the West
the Alliance is seen as remaining quite necessary. The difficulty that
.~~~~ '4-mmk m ~
4
dominates the debate, however, is that with the fading away of the sim-
ple and direct military threat that engendered NATO initially, the mil-
itary and political issues of the Alliance depend more and more on
national and individual perceptions of the quality of a much more sub-
tle Soviet threat: All those troops and tanks in East Germany,
Czechoslovakia, Poland, and the Soviet Union itself are not likely to
move west; but still and all, in the absence of good defenses, they
could. Western defenses, particularly nuclear, remain the necessary
deterrent against Warsaw Pact attack; were the West to lack such
defenses, it might be best not to upset the Great Power that controls
the Pact's troops and tanks. The Soviets could thus extend political
and economic constraints around the free nations of NATO, as they
have around Finland.
It is "Finlandization" rather than military occupation that NATO
Europe has worried about for two or more decades. The concept of a
nation operating under a democratic system in the best European sense
but nonetheless making its decisions in the belief tha. it cannot afford
to irritate a far more powerful neighbor is a difficult one. Finland is
the only current example; perhaps history can provide others among
nations that existed on the periphery of Nazi Germany in the 1930s
(Czechoslovakia in particular), but these had only brief lives because
Hitler soon regularized their status by conquering them. Nonetheless,
the concept remains. Western fears tend to be confirmed by Soviet
doctrines related to the "correlation of forces,"
3
which assert that
greater conformity to the wishes and needs of the USSR should in fact
follow its preponderance of power. It is these fears, supported by the
still-perceived possibility of the actual use of force by the Soviets, that
motivate the nations of Western Europe and the United States to stay
together in an alliance strong enough to deter the potential political
and military threats from the East. Because of the evanescent nature
of the political and military threats, however, and because of the lack
of concrete and current evidence bearing on them, the debate tends
toward the theological, although not so much as the debate over
nuclear deterrence, where no real evidence is available.
4
The various Soviet threats are latent, however. More important to
the shaping of the Alliance of the 1980s, and more difficult to deal with
than external threats, are each member's perceptions of the other
members of the Alliance and of the other members' perceptions. The
issue around which most of the debate rages is that
3
See p. 73.
4.Se Robert A. Levine, The Strategic Nuclear Debate, The RAND Corporation,
R-365-FF/CC/RC, October 1987.
5J
Americans have committed themselves to the defense of Western
Europe by nuclear means if necessary, but in order to deter qggression
the Soviets must believe that commitment, and in order to keep the
Alliance together the West Europeans must believe it and believe that
the Soviets believe it.
For Europeans, this issue is one of survival of their nations and their
civilization; it is central to their security concerns. Most American
officials and analysts, however, tend to take their own commitment for
granted, and they talk abouiti less.
The difference in vital interests is not the only one, however.
NATO's military posture consists of both military and political ele-
ments, and Americans and West Europeans differ over the balance
between them. The most important example concerns the question of
the threshold at which defense will change from conventional to
nuclear. Americans treat this as being a military issue of threat, esca-
lation, and combat; deterrence is made credible to Soviets and West
Europeans by the United States maintaining the rationality of nuclear
response as a final alternative to defeat. West Europeans treat the
same problem as a political issue of U.S. will; deterrence is made credi-
ble to the Soviets and other Europeans by the visibility of the Ameri-
can deterrent force, as a manifest of that will. As a result of these and
similar differences, Americans tend to raise military issues within the
Alliance, Europeans react; Europeans tend to raise political issues,
Americans react.
The military-political distinction raises another problem. It is very
difficult to justify vast military expenditures on mainly political
grounds, particularly on the basis of satisfying one's allies. In 1965,
Norman Jones and I wrote that:
To preserve the Alliance, . . . a [military] posture should try to
satisfy (or at least not violate) the felt needs of the members, and we
thus can arrive at a set of political criteria, based on these needs....
Since [such] political imperatives... will not suffice to obtain popu-
lar and governmental support for a posture, however, some military
rationale is still needed, as a binding force for the chosen posture....
The threat of an all-out Soviet invasion of Western Europe seems to
have outlived its usefulness as a rationale, primarily because few
governments or people still believe it to be realistic.
5
Our crystal ball was clouded in one respect: After more than 20 addi-
tional years of implausibility, the all-out Soviet invasion still lives as
the primary military rationale for the political Alliance. Nonetheless,
the need for a military rationale to justify steps taken to satisfy
'Quotd in Robert A. Levine, Pui Planning: FaIure and Redirection, Basic Books,
Now York, 1972, pp. 121-122.
. .. .. ~~ A... ; . ,, .
a
political requirements continues to affect the NATO debate, and some-
times to dominate it.
The tendency of the Alliance to be more concerned with itself than
with the threat from its Warsaw Pact opponents has, if anything, been
increasing over many years. Ironically, what might change this intro-
spective orientation is the possibility that the Soviet Union under the
new leadership of Mikhail Gorbachev, or after Gorbachev, might swing
radically in one direction cr another; and the NATO West might be
forced to concentrate again on the precise nature of the threat or
nonthreat from the East.
One French analyst, writing in 1986, stated that: "In the bundle of
factors that have, since 1954, determined the evolution of the Franco-
German dialogue on matters of security, the Soviet Union has
appeared, without doubt, as the only constant."
6
Although Soviet con-
stancy has not been invariant in its expression-after the end of the
Berlin crises of the early 1960s, for example, the possibility of direct
use of military force seemed to decrease substantially-the USSR has
remained a hostile opponent. Soviet hostility and opposition could be
counted on, even if implemented differently under Khrushchev than
under Stalin, and in still other ways under Brezhnev. Should this
underlying constancy now change radically one, way or another, the
NATO debate could shift focus back to the Soviet Union instead of the
member nations of the Alliance.
In fact, rapid change on the Soviet side has already begun. It will
not be clear for many years how radical or how permanent it is-how
far Gorbachev wants to or can push internal liberalization, or, for that
matter, how long he will be in a position to keep trying. Equally
unclear for at least as long will be the extent to which the new interna-
tional approaches of the Soviet Union represent a difference of tactics
rather than a fundamental shift of objectives. What is clear is that the
USSR in the late 1980s appears very different from what anyone on
either side of the East-West border predicted in the early part of the
decade. Almost as certain is that whether the future direction is
toward openness and international cooperation or repression and hos-
tility, the Soviet Union of the 1990s will be far different from that of
the 1970s. Technology, economics, and demographics will preclude
simple reversion to the past, just as when Brezhnev retreated from the
proto-perestroika of Khrushchev, the resulting Soviet Union of the
1960s and 1970s was quite different from Stalin's Soviet Union of the
1940s.
eNicole Gnessoto, "Le Dialogue Franco-Allemand depuis 1954: Patience et Longeur
do Temps," in Karl Kaier and Pierre Lollouche (eds.), Le Couple Frmco-Alemand et la
Ddfenae de L'Iurope, IFRI, Paris, 1986, p. 11.
- ..
3I
One way or another, the North Atlantic Alliance will have a new-
style opponent; one way or another the Alliance will have to adapt.
The Epilog to this report suggests that the NATO organism is likely to
internalize the external stimuli stemming from Soviet change, shifting
relationships within the Alliance rather than either breaking up or
creating a radically different relationship with the Warsaw Pact. Such
adaptations have begun in the late 1980s, as the Alliance and its
members have reacted to radical-seeming Soviet arms control and
related proposals and have tried to come up with proposals of their
own designed to maintain and improve the security of Western Europe.
Yet predictions going beyond the immediate future of NATO are no
more certain than those attempting to lay out the future direction of
Soviet change. The only certainty is change itself, with the change on
both sides likely to occur much more rapidly than we have been accus-
tomed to for at least the last two decades.
SCHOOLS OF THOUGHT
A "School of Thought" is a somewhat arbitrary construct with which
to analyze a debate; any debater worth considering is idiosyncratic, and
policy views vary along a continuum rather than falling into discrete
groups. Nonetheless, positions in most debates tend to assemble
around specific issues and specific opinions on these issues. Although
the precise boundaries between the schools described here are neces-
sarily arbitrary, the lines delineate recognizable clusters of views.
Policy views consist logically of value judgments about desirable
states of the world, analyses of existing and possible states, and recom-
mendations about actions policyinakers should take ,o move toward
desirable outcomes within the range of the possible.
7
Recommendations
ordinarily provide the best basis for distinguishing schools of thought;
and the major schools in the NATO debate are grouped around various
American and European recommendations, based in part on different
analyses but perhaps even more on different value weights put on
potential gains and risks. To be sure, none of these differences are
cleancut: Europeans differ widely among themselves over NATO
7
For a fuller description of thues logical constructs, see Robert A. Levine, The Arms
Debate, pp. 14-27. The NATO debate is mbject to one additional complexity absent
from the other two segment, of the American arms debate, those concerning military
policy toward the Third World, and the control and use of strategic nuclear weapons. In
those two, the recommendations are made to a single government, that of the United
States. In the NATO debate, they are addressed to 16 sovereignties, and what is a
recommendation to one-'Our government should do thia"-is an analytical issue for the
other-Will they do it?"
L . .;. '.,. .. ' % ..
policy, and so do Americans. Further, some Americans tend to argue
like Europeans, some Europeans argue like Americans; in particular,
lines tend to blur because some arguments on each side of the Atlantic
are based on resonance, conscious efforts to placate the other side.
Nonetheless, the European-American distinction stands up as the
crucial one for understanding this very complex debate. It stands up
because European debaters start out with the preservation of Western
Europe as their central value, and how to maintain the essential Amer-
ican deterrent role in their preservation is the major analytical issue
they debate about. American debaters start out assuming the U.S. role,
but how to balance deterrence of Soviet aggression against Western
Europe with avoidance of strategic nuclear war is much of what they
debate about. All this results in diverging European and American pol-
icy recommendations in spite of similarities on some specific issues.
This European-American difference is based more on variously
weighted value sets leading to different choices of salient issues than it
is on major analytical or value differences on specific issues.
This report divides the NATO debaters among four schools of
thought, major and minor ones (defined in terms of their effect on
policymaking) on each side of the Atlantic. Most American officials
and analysts come together into one major school.
* The Maintainers. The members of this school stress the impor-
tance of maintaining the commitment of the United States to
European defense. They converge on three propositions:
- No Early Use of Nuclear Weapons. Recognizing that nuclear
weapons are part of the overall scheme to deter Soviet
aggression in Europe, and that this implies an inherent pos-
sibility that we might have to use them, nuclear defense
should be a last resort, not a first. Almost all American offi-
cials and analysts espouse a doctrine of "No Early Use" of
nuclear weapons in Europe: Do everything else possible
first, even though such a high conventional-nuclear threshold
might conceivably be taken as an unwillingness to use
nuclear weapons at all and could thus downgrade deterrence.
(It might, however, strengthen deterrence by making any ini-
tial American response more likely.)
- Increased Conventional Capabilities. To make No Early Use
as plausible as possible, substantial stress should be placed
on improving NATO's conventional capabilities and strate-
gies. A corollary-by-omission of this proposition is that not
much is said about how to pay for such improvements. Both
F - immmmml m mlm mmm I
the desire for increased conventional capabilities and the
economic-budgetary conundrum have deep roots in NATO's
history.
Continued U.S. Commitment. As noted, Europeans question
this, or at least fear its erosion. Most Americans do not.
They desire no diminution of the historic U.S. commitment
to the defense of NATO Europe and believe that no substan-
tial weakening has yet occurred at either the conventional or
nuclear levels. Although the commitment has lacked the cer-
tainty of a doomsday machine, it has sufficed to deter Soviet
adventurism in Europe for 40 years, and can continue to do
so in the future in much the same manner. Commitment,
measured as the probability of appropriate U.S. response,
however, is not synonomous with the size of the U.S. forces
in Europe, conventional or nuclear, representing that
response. No consensus exists on these matters, and some
Americans believe that the same commitment can be
expressed more cheaply or differently.
To stress the consensus on these three propositions does not
imply that the Maintainers form a single tight-knit school. On
other issues in the overall arms debate, Americans divide into
diverse schools.
5
And important differences over NATO also
exist, although they relate only in part to those on non-NATO
issues. For example, the 1987 negotiations over zeroing out
Soviet and American Intermediate-Range Nuclear Forces in
Europe caused substantial controversy among American Main-
tainers, as well as between Americans and Europeans and among
Europeans. Such differences among the Maintainers are tactical
and temporary, appearing more on the surface than along deep
fault lines based on substantially different value judgments or
analytical conclusions. Many of the Americans who opposed the
INF agreement did so primarily because they were worried about
the reactions of European NATO members, rather than them-
selves fearing that it would substantially weaken deterrence or
defense, an example of transatlantic resonance based on percep-
tions of perceptions. Such tactical differences are the reason why
the INF controversy threw together such unusual bedfellows:
President Reagan and enthusiastic arms controllers favoring the
zeroing out of INF; former President Nixon and Democratic
$See Levine, The Strutgic Nuclear Debate; and The Arms Debate and the d
World Have We Learned From Vietnam.
i . . .i
10
Chairman Les Aspin of the House Armed Services Committee
opposing it. On future issues, tactics may sort the sides out dif-
ferently.
The split between the Maintainers and the other, much smaller,
American school that in recent years has spun off the right wing of this
pro-NATO consensus is more fundamental:
The Withdrawers. They want the United States to effectively
withdraw from NATO. Most of them believe that Western
Europe is fully capable of defending itself, is decadently unwilling
to to so, and in any case is flirting far too seriously with the
Soviet Union. Most Withdrawers are strong anti-Communists
including many of the same individuals who want to confront the
Soviet Union throughout the Third World, but they believe that
the threat of Western Europe actually "going Communist" is
slim, so that the United States should apply its limited military
and other resources to areas where the danger is more real, as
well as to such regions of growing economic importance as Japan
and the rest of the Pacific Basin. Public Interest editor and NYU
Professor Irving Kristol is one prophet here; Professor Melvin
Krauss, also of NYU, is another. In addition, although most
American radical disarmers of the left focus on strategic nuclear
weapons and do not treat with NATO as such, the few who do
enter the European thicket make policy recommendations similar
to those coming from the right, and they are included in this
school, as are some strong-Navy partisans who want to concen-
trate expenditures on seaborne capabilities rather than land
forces
anywhere.
9
The Withdrawers can be considered a "minor" School of Thought
in that there are few of them and their influence in the United
States, even within the Reagan administration, which most of
them back, is small. But they influence the NATO debate in at
least one important way: Many of the European debaters take
their views seriously as an indication of a future American trend
toward withdrawal from the Alliance, and this conditions the
views and arguments of these Europeans.
The European school most closely corresponding to the American
Withdrawers comes from the "peace movement." Logically aligned
fThe different premises from which various groups of Withdrawers arrive at similar
conclusions are so widespread that, were the group more significant to policymaking, it
might be divided more rigorously into subschools.
11
with the American nuclear disarmers, they no longer have the same
close political relationship as existed in the early 1960s when the
British Campaign for Nuclear Disarmament (CND) and the American
Committee for a Sane Nuclear Policy (SANE) worked closely together,
and Bertrand Russell and C. P. Snow were prophets of both move-
ments.
e The Removers. What they want to remove is nuclear weapons
from Europe. They include the majority of the British Labour
Party, the Green Party and an important portion of the Social-
ists (SPD) in the Federal Republic of Germany, and sizable con-
tingents in most of the smaller NATO nations. The School is
larger relative to the total electorates of these countries than are
the American Withdrawers (or the American peace movement).
Nonetheless, its direct influence on national policies is small:
The peace movement participates in none of the major European
governments, and political arithmetic and the electoral calendar
make such participation in any near future highly unlikely; it
does affect the governments of some of the smaller NATO
members, but it controls none of them. Indirectly, however, the
movement's ability to influence public opinion on specific issues
by its arguments and by mobilizing large numbers of demonstra-
tors keeps governments and oppositions, particularly in Germany,
looking over their shoulders, thus affecting the positions of the
larger European School of Thought.
The Removers fear the U.S. nuclear commitment to the old con-
tinent. The more extreme members of the school believe that the
United States, at least under President Reagan, is "morally
equivalent" to the Soviet Union, at least under Chairman Gor-
bachev, although the movement began to gather strength when
Brezhnev was still Soviet leader. They want the continent, East
and West, to solve their own problems in a nonnuclear way.
The more moderate Removers, including most of those in the
British Labour Party and the German SPD, remain pro-NATO.
They just want to get rid of the nuclear weapons in Europe, and
substitute conventional "defensive defenses" incapable of mount-
ing offensive operations across the East-West border. The Brit-
ish Removers want to get rid of the British independent nuclear
deterrent as well as the U.S. nuclear forces based in the United
Kingdom, but the movement is not important in France, the
owner of the other European independent deterrent force.
:~ . , . -
12
The more important of the two European schools of thought encom-
passes the governments of almost all the European NATO members
and major segments of the opposition parties as well.
* The Couplers. This school includes a broad range of mainstream
European officials and analysts, including many in opposition as
well as those in power, all of whom have some concern about the
U.S. commitment, This school puts the greatest stress on mutual
perceptions, starting with the perception of American intentions.
In contrast to the American Maintainers, who take the continued
U.S. obligation for granted, the Couplers focus on the question of
whether in fact the American commitment can be taken for
granted any more. They are particularly concerned about
"decoupling," a weakening of the commitment that "couples"
American strategic nuclear forces to the defense of Western
Europe and thus provides the ultimate deterrent to Soviet aggres-
sion. The first two American propositions, on No Early Use and
stronger conventional capabilities, are examined and reexamined
to see whether they reveal any structural flaws in the third prop-
osition favoring continued American commitment. For a few
Europeans, particularly among the French, the question has been
whether the commitment ever could be taken for granted.
Coupler viewpoints on all issues do not vary clearly by national-
ity. The major nations do differ on the key issues of the U.S.
commitment to Europe and on the relationships among the Euro-
pean members, however; and the general gestalt of each of the big
three European nations can be described, as can some of the roles
in the NATO debate of the smaller members.
The French, as philosophes, are the most concerned and the
least troubled. Since de Gaulle, they have expressed the
greatest doubts about the reliability of the American commit-
ment, but most of the doubters also concede that the poten-
tial of their own independent deterrent stems in large mea-
sure from the possibility that its use may invoke the far
larger U.S. nuclear force. French doubts about the quality
and endurance of the U.S. commitment lead them, philo-
sophically and perhaps pragmatically, toward more purely
European defense concepts, in which their perceptions of the
Germans in particular play a central role. So far as France's
own defense policy is concerned, consensus is far stronger
than in the other major NATO nations: There is broad
national agreement on the need for continued independence
.... ... . . . . ., , ,& , . . -, , -
. , ,,., . . .. .. .. - .
.
. . . ..
mm IrN mm m mmm ,mm m m mmr mYmmm*m -
4
13
of the French nuclear deterrent; there is no sentiment for
reintegration into the military structure of NATO; and the
Remover peace movement is trivial.
The British agree on the need for a better coordinated Euro-
pean defense effort, strategically and technologically, but
they base this more on its positive desirability than on any
fear of U.S. withdrawal of the commitment to NATO.
Unlike the French, the British are divided: Although the
Removers are in a distinct minority in the United Kingdom,
they form the majority of the main opposition party, Labour.
The British Coupler consensus, including the Conservative
government and most of the smaller Liberal and Social
Democratic opposition grouping in the middle, is that NATO
is evolving gradually, as always, and a substantial American
conventional and nuclear commitment is likely to be a
feature for a long time to come.
The West Germans have more of a division within the
Coupler establishment than do the French or British, as well
as a substantial debate between the establishment and the
Removers of the Green Party and the SPD left wing.
Within the governing coalition, the Christian Democrats
(CDU), including the Defense Minister, tend toward the
French fears, with their sister party the Bavarian Christian
Socialists (CSU) pulling even harder in this direction. Their
coalition partner, the Free Democrats (FDP), including the
long-time Foreign Minister, are far less tense as are the
Couplers in the SPD. The major basis for these divisions is
that, far more than the French and the British, the Germans
are pulled in three directions: by the close Atlantic tie to the
United States, by the European stress emphasized by the
French, and by the Soviet ability to turn the heat up or
down on the eastern border. The Federal Republic's situa-
tion is complicated by its front-line geography, by its depen-
dence on the strength, particularly the nuclear strength, of
others, and by the existence of a Soviet-dominated country
with the same language and heritage, the German Demo-
cratic Republic. In addition, the residual guilt and suspi-
cions left over from the Nazi era place constraints, now
largely self-imposed, on German military policy.
Perhaps the only valid generalization that can be made about
the smaller member nations-Canada, Scandinavia, the Low
,I . .. ... - 'I" ,I :-. ' . , _. " ;'-
14
Countries, southern Europe, and Turkey-is that they differ
from one another. They recognize that their choices, includ-
ing the possibility of simply opting out of NATO (which
might force them to leave the European Economic Commun-
ity as well) are constrained. Given this, most of the smaller
members tend toward the relaxed side of the concerns over
U.S. reliability. In addition, however, they contribute
several specific items to the debate. One is the reminder
that NATO confronts the Warsaw Pact elsewhere than on
the German central front; the "flank" nations, Norway and
Turkey, are the only ones having land borders with the
Soviet Union.
10
Another reminder is that the Alliance has
severe internal problems unrelated to the Soviets or the
Pact, the strong hostility between Greece and Turkey being
the chief case in point. In addition, although the govern-
ments of the smaller members, except perhaps for Greece,
remain firmly in the Coupler consensus, several of the
nations have Remover contingents strong enough to be taken
into consideration both as potential threats to some of the
national contributions (e.g., of conventional forces in key
sectors and of territory for military sites and supply lines)
and as advocates of some military strategies based on static
"defensive defenses," which might otherwise be ignored.
ISSUES
The eight issue categories into which this report divides the subject
matter of the NATO debate range is a continuum from the almost
completely political to the almost strictly military. The European
Couplers stress the political end, and the issue they treat as central,
that of the American commitment and nuclear coupling, is largely
political-a question of will and willingness. These obviously depend
in some measure on the military factors that would determine the out-
come if the United States were to use its forces to fulfil the commit-
ment.
The U.S. Commitment to NATO. European analysts and
authorities in the Coupler school believe that it has been the
U.S. commitment in general and the nuclear commitment
specifically that have deterred the threat of Soviet attack and
1
eThe other NATO member bordering directly on the Soviet Union is the United
States, across the Bering Strait.
Z
16
continue to do so. Although most of them would prefer to
deemphasize the nuclear aspects, American Maintainers tend to
agree that the ultimate risk of nuclear war plays a central role
in NATO deterrence.
The detailed strategic questions raised under this rubric
include: What are U.S. policies with regard to nuclear deter-
rence of conventional or nuclear attacks in Europe that may
involve American troops but not the American homeland? Are
these policies changing drastically? How do the policies and
stated U.S. commitments fit with other U.S. commitments in
other parts of the world? Particularly in the light of changing
nuclear balances, how willing is the United States and how will-
ing will it be to stand itself hostage against attacks on allies?
And how long will current commitments last, how dependable
are they, and how reliable, particularly in the light of the
idiosyncracies of some recent American commanders-in-chief?
All of these are matters of perceptions and perceptions of per-
ceptions.
In addition to such matters of strategy and high policy,
economic issues play a large role in transatlantic relations. One
of these, burden-sharing within the Alliance, is within the pur-
view of this report. Others, particularly issues of international
trade, are peripheral here even though they may be the real
determinants of the future course of the military alliance.
Closely related to the U.S. commitment is the issue of
The Europeans' Commitments to Themselves. Even though
"Europe and (or versus) the United States" is common phrase-
ology, Europe is not a unit, at least not yet. Throughout the
history of the North Atlantic Alliance, but increasingly now,
the possibility has been discussed of a more specifically Euro-
pean role. This classical issue includes two rather different
components: the possibility of a more indigenously European
strategy, perhaps putting more weight than now on British and
French nuclear weapons, and the effort to produce weapons
cooperatively.
A more recent addition to the long-running discussion of a gen-
eral drawing together of the European members of NATO has
concerned the potential for Franco-German military coopera-
tion. Issues that have come into serious discussion include the
16
extent to which the interests of both countries dictate that
France's defensive frontier should be at the Elbe rather than
the Rhine and the implications of such a change for both
French nuclear strategy and French and German conventional
forces.
One political issue is potentially more important than any of the
others, even that of U.S. commitment.
The Soviet Role. It is still widely believed that without NATO,
the Soviets would dominate Europe militarily and politically.
Most military measures are justified in terms of a much more
specific threat, however, a massive Warsaw Pact attack across
the Iron Curtain. Since the end of the Berlin crises of the early
1960s, the likelihood of such an attack has been increasingly
difficult to take seriously. As a result, justifications have had
little to do with real military steps, and this dissonance has dis-
torted the debate. The perceived Soviet threat remains the
raison d'Otre for NATO, but because the perception that Soviet
hostility was low and prudent has been constant over many
years, variations in the Alliance and in the debate have
depended more and more on members' perceptions of one
another. Were this to change-if Gorbachev were to convince
the West that the Soviets are really substantially less hostile
than in the past or, conversely, if the internal turmoil brought
about by Gorbachev were to make Soviet hostility less
prudent-then the USSR might replace the United States as
the central consideration for NATO. In the late 1980s, such
changes are beginning to have a considerable effect on the
current debate.
Closely related is an issue that in the early days of NATO could not
even have been described in a separate paragraph.
Eastern Europe. At the start of the Alliance, the Soviet bloc
was the Soviet bloc, the USSR and a collection of satellites sub-
dued militarily and tamed by brutality. Yugoslavia broke loose
early but was considered a special case. Western failure to
intervene in East Berlin in 1953, in Hungary in 1956, and in
Czechoslovakia in 1968 definitively demonstrated the
irrelevance of NATO military force; this was the Soviet sphere
of influence, and violating it was assumed to run too great a
risk of starting the big war. The post-Stalin period, however,
.. . . . _.r _ _ _ _ _._ ._ _ _ _ ' ",- , . ., "
IL,...
17
saw the beginning of a phenomenon contemplated earlier by
only a few Western Sovietologists, the gradual if uneven relaxa-
tion of Soviet dominance, to the point where almost all of the
satellites have exhibited some degree of autonomy in domestic
systems or foreign relations. To some extent, loosening of the
Soviet grip has been allowed by NATO noninterference in the
East; once the Soviets understood that we would not actively
abet "disruption" in the satellites, they may have been more
willing to allow small fires without fearing Western contribu-
tions of more fuel. In the specific case most important to the
West and probably to the Soviet Union too, however, that of
East Germany, West German Chancellor Willy Brandt's Ostpol-
itik initiated a set of policies much more active than before in
encouraging a degree of Communist exchange with the West.
The Federal Republic is literally and figuratively central to
NATO, so that in that case at least, Eastern European issues
assume substantial importance to the Alliance.
The final political issue in the NATO debate is one that has never
dominated the discussion but has occasionally loomed large.
NATO and the Rest of the World. Throughout the years of the
Alliance it has been understood that the United States has had
continuing security responsibilities in regions of the world other
than Europe. Occasionally other members, notably France and
Britain, have projected military power to other areas. Indeed,
one major change from the beginning to the present has been
the shift from the gradual decolonialization by the older powers
encouraged by the "anti-imperialist" United States, to the more
recent outcries in Europe about U.S. activities in Vietnam, Cen-
tral America, and other parts of the Third World. One ques-
tion raised in the debate of the 1970s and continuing strongly
into the 1980s has been the role of the United States and the
rest of NATO in protecting the flow of oil to the industrial
nations from the Middle East. More recently, with the advent
of the Reagan administration, doubts have been expressed as to
whether global anticommunism weakens the American commit-
ment to Europe.
The more military issues include the crucial link between conventional
and nuclear warfare, as well as questions more specifically concerned
with conventional weapons and strategies. Because American Main-
tainers think more in military terms than do the European Couplers,
.:, ., : _,I T ,
,
-_ , 1,
I I I L " i ii~mi m. 1
18
the link is as central to them as is the U.S. commitment to the
Couplers.
* The Conventional-Nuclear Link. This is the military side of the
political question about the reliability of the U.S. commitment,
particularly the commitment to use nuclear weapons if neces-
sary. Militarily, the coupling question is that of the "thresh-
old." At what level of conventional violence, under what condi-
tions of imminent defeat, how, tactically, will the U.S. president
permit or order NATO's Supreme Commander to use American
nuclear weapons? The before-the-event planning issue here is
that of Deterrence versus Defense: To what extent are conven-
tional forces intended to defend against conventional attack by
the Warsaw Pact, compared with the use of those forces, partic-
ularly American troops, as a "tripwire" for U.S. nuclear
weapons? Some members of the Coupler school suggest that
deterrence is everything; modern conventional defense would be
more traumatic than conventional World War II and would
thus be little preferable to nuclear devastation. These issues are
covered by NATO's "Flexible Response" doctrine, which
depends on a spectrum of conventional and nuclear responses
to Pact attack. But the doctrine is so flexible and necessarily
vague about what defense will be put up against what aggres-
sion that it permits a full panoply of views in the debate.
* Conventional Weapons. These issues include the size and
deployment of forces, their sustainabiity over time in battle,
and the quality of the Warsaw Pact armies they will face. They
cover types of weapons and roles of new "Emerging Technolo-
gies." The issues also emphasize strategies: forward defense,
offensive versus defensive tactics, Follow-On Forces Attack
(FOFA), AirLand battle, "defensive defenses," and the like,
each one of which has deep roots in NATO history and debates,
and political as well as military dimensions. Much less dis-
cussed is the constraint that has inhibited resolution of each of
these issues throughout the history of the Alliance-the
budgetary constraint of who's to pay. Another underlying issue
is whether a conventional war fought on NATO territory
(mainly West German) would be much less destructive than a
tactical nuclear war.
One additional issue that falls under the Conventional weapons
rubric is the defense of NATO's flanks-Norway and Turkey,
which border on the Soviet Union; and Greece, which has a
common boundary with Bulgaria. NATO defense plans for
these areas are primarily conventional; indeed, Norway has
4. ,. .. '*$~ A l
19
explicitly eschewed the presence of nuclear weapons on its terri-
tory. For the most part, however, the flanks are ignored in
NATO dialogue, except by the flank nations themselves.
Finally, on one set of issues, political and military considerations are
not only well-mixed, as they are in all of the categories, but also almost
equally balanced.
Arms Control and Disarmament. On one side of the national
and international debates on arms control and disarmament in
Europe is the contention that mutual East-West arms reduc-
tions will in themselves assist in maintaining peace and Euro-
pean stability. On the other side are considerations of the
effects of various measures on the military balance between
NATO and the Warsaw Pact, the effects of changes in this bal-
ance on the chances of Soviet attack, and the political shadow
of such an attack. The common NATO belief in overwhelming
Warsaw Pact conventional superiority has raised questions
about any form of nuclear arms control that might sacrifice the
Alliance's capability to deter a conventional attack or oppose it
with nuclear weapons. More recently, however, the possibility
of using conventional controls to improve the balance has come
into the debate.
THEMES
Cutting across the schools of thought and the specific issues are
several themes brought out by the analysis and referred to throughout
the discussion. They are presented here to help tie together the poten-
tial 32 boxes created by four schools and eight issue categories.
11
* Changes always appear radical when you are in the midst of
them. This theme begins with the next section on the history
of the Alliance. NATO has frequently appeared to be changing
drastically and, more often than not, alarmingly. Most of the
time such changes have turned out to be routine.
e Views on Alliance policy are based on members' perceptions of
the Soviet Union and of each other. This has already been dis-
cussed and will recur.
'lThe issue categories are not used in the discussions of the two minor schools, the
Removers and the Withdrawers, so the actual number of boxes is somewhat smaller.
The whole thing remains very complicated, however.
iJ
j !
!
Ai
20
* Interests and perceptions differ among members of the Alliance,
and, in particular, between the European members and the
United States. That interests differ is obvious; the paramount
interest in self-preservation differs according to whose self is
being preserved. In large measure, different perceptions are
based on these different interests. One crucial transatlantic
difference is not interest-based, but stems from historically dif-
ferent worldviews: Europeans tend to treat the world in general
and the Soviet threat in particular as being political; Americans
think much more in military terms.
* Some positions in the debate are taken in order to reconcile other
debaters. The report terms this "resonance." All of the
member nations and most of the debaters value the Alliance
highly and fear its erosion stemming from the disaffection of
others. Thus positions are often based neither on national
interests nor on considered views of the common interest, but
on a desire to reconcile the assumed interests or perceptions of
Alliance partners. Frequently this is constructive; the metaphor
of marriage has been used. Sometimes, however, fear-based
resonance leads to a crescendo of misunderstanding and self-
fulfilling prophecies. The metaphor may apply here too.
* Fading fears, over the last 25 years, of direct Soviet military
attack have accentuated intra-Alliance differences, political con-
siderations, the role of perceptions, and negative resonances.
Hence the functioning of NATO as a "subjective alliance" and
the substitution of fear of "Finlandization" for fear of military
aggression. Were the East-West border characterized by
massed forces on high alert, life would be simpler but a lot more
dangerous.
* Potentially major changes in the Soviet Union are inducing
potentially major changes in the Alliance. These changes, par-
ticularly those in Soviet external policy most relevant to the
West, are perceived as being far more radical than those of the
preceding quarter century. If they were seen as militarily
threatening, they might recreate the dominance of military over
political considerations in the Alliance. Because they are
apparently moving in the opposite direction, they are more
likely to affect the political structure of NATO. Political
changes, however, should fall far short of either ending the Alli-
ance or starting it in a radically new direction. This is what
the Epilog is about.
H. HISTORY
I can recall, from the early days of NATO, an air force
colonel who kept on his desk a rubber stamp that said. "In
this perilous moment in the history of the alliance.... " He
used that stamp with great frequency
-James Schlesinger
1
In retrospect, the history of NATO has moved along a fairly smooth
curve, even though the retrospective curve may be made up of the
stringing together of what seemed at the time to be recurrent perilous
moments. In its three and a half decades, however, the Alliance has
undergone one substantial change in character, with the change taking
place mostly in the 1960s.
NATO was created to cope with two problems-the potential for
future Soviet aggression in Europe, and the history of past German
aggression. These problems dominated throughout the 1950s; but with
the ending of the Berlin crises in the early 1960s, Europe and the world
began to settle into safer patterns. The Soviet military threat per-
ceived by West Europeans changed from active to latent; German
aggression became a matter of record and memory, but no longer a
menace for the future.
The Berlin Wall solved the problem of population flight for the
Soviets and East Germans and ended the perennial confrontations
around that city; the Cuban missile crisis and the subsequent disap-
pearance of the unpredictable Khrushchev stabilized U.S.-Soviet mili-
tary relations. Later in the decade, the advent of West German Social-
ist Willy Brandt, first as Foreign Minister and then as Chancellor, had
two major effects: His Ostpolitik openings to the East confirmed the
settling down of relations with the Soviets and the East Germans; his
impeccable and active anti-Nazi record finally put to rest most
Western fears of the future reverting to the past. In addition to these
two major changes in the Soviet and the German problems in the
1960s, the American entrapment in Vietnam signalled the shift within
NATO from a reactionary Europe whose decolonization needed prod-
ding by an anti-imperialist United States to something that appeared
to be 180 degrees away.
At the same time, an issue that had been germinal at most in 1951
when the U.S. commitment of troops cemented the military alliance,
'James Schlesingsr, "An American Perspective," speech reprinted in the ContWunal
Record, June 20, 1984, p. 87749.
21
.. .. ' i:!. .*, , ..
22
the connection between conventional defense and nuclear deterrence,
grew, by the late 1950s and the 1960s, to become the dominant ques-
tion in the NATO debate. The building of the British and French
nuclear deterrents in the same period, and the 1966 departure of
France from NATO's military structure, were based in large measure
on the issue of the nuclear threshold and U.S. commitment.
By the 1970s, then, NATO had changed from an Alliance about the
Soviet Union of the present and the Germany of the past to an organi-
zation that was operationally much more concerned with itself and the
specific needs of its individual members although still based on the per-
ceived need to counter the Soviet military threat and its political
consequences. It had become the "subjective" alliance. The key issue
toward which the NATO debate was oriented became, as it remains
today, the certainty or uncertainty of the American commitment and
how the United States and the other nations cope with this less-than-
perfect guarantor of West European security.
The next portion of this brief history provides a quick chronology of
the NATO past and relevant surrounding events, not as a substitute
for the excellent histories that have been written,
2
but a's an impres-
sionistic reminder of the way we were, in order to lay out the back-
ground for the development of the major NATO issues over the period.
The division of the chronology into decades is, of course, arbitrary, but
it does apportion the history into digestible segments.
THE 1950s: INITIATION
Within NATO, the organization, put together in the late 1940s as a
somewhat symbolic response to Soviet pressures, became a military
alliance with the commitment of American troops in 1951, in substan-
tial measure as a response to fears created by the North Korean inva-
sion of South Korea. The recognition that West German troops would
be needed for defense of the West led to the creation of the European
Defense Community (EDC), intended to create a European army that
would include German soldiers under the command of others; but the
1954 failure of the French to ratify EDC put West German forces
directly into NATO. The 1952 Lisbon conference set forth conven-
tional force goals so high (96 active and reserve divisions) as to be far
out of the reach of NATO wills and budgets, and the recognition of
this unreality led to a belief in overwhelming Soviet conventional
superiority as a permanent matter. As a result, nuclear deterrence of
2&0, for example, Alfred Groser, The Western Aliance, New York, Vintage Books,
1982.
I n [ilmlumimli__in
i
_______Ula__, .. .
(
A
23
Soviet aggression in Europe became the central emphasis of the Alli-
ance. In 1954, the MC 14-2 plan put into NATO doctrine the concept
of (American) massive retaliation, but British and French unwilling-
ness to bet their existence on the American commitment led to the
start of the two independent deterrents.
Among the member nations, the strong leaders were Eisenhower (and
John Foster Dulles) and Adenauer. The British shifted between the
two major parties and the French drifted. American nuclear strategy
consisted of massive retaliation; and the United States, after finishing
the Korean War, was economically comfortable if frequently mildly
depressed. Boosted by the Marshall Plan, European economies
recovered rapidly led by the German economic miracle; by the end of
the decade Germany was able to make a major military contribution to
the Alliance. In 1957, the Treaty of Rome initiated the European
Economic Community (EEC), the Common Market, but without Brit-
ain. Within several NATO nations, notably France and Italy, Com-
munist parties were large and considered a real threat.
The Soviet Union moved from Stalin through Malenkov to Khrush-
chev, who, while more personable and less ominous than Stalin, proved
to be just as hostile in different ways. Although the Russians agreed to
a peace treaty permitting a free Austria, the suppression of the Hun-
garian revolt in 1956 confirmed both the willingness of the Soviets
after Stalin to preserve their East European hold and the unwillingness
of the West to intrude into the Soviet sphere of influence. The initia-
tion of the Warsaw Pact formalized the Soviets' multinational response
to NATO multinationalism, but no doubts were allowed about who was
in absolute control of the Pact. The launching of Sputnik in 1957
demonstrated to the West that it could not depend on technology to
outrace the Soviets militarily.
Outside of Europe and North America the major relevant trend was
the rush of the nations of West Europe to decolonize their possessions
and contract their spheres of influence. Frequently this was voluntary,
as it had been for the British in India in the 1940s, but Dienbienphu
and Suez illustrated some less willing withdrawals.
THE 1960s: REFORMULATION
Within NATO, the decade of change began with the Soviet testing of
Western wills as they tried to use military pressures to end the
Western occupation and free status of West Berlin and finally gave up
when the building of the Wall stanched the flow of East German
refugees to the West. Together with other events and the continuation
. . . ...-
24
of economic growth, the termination of the Berlin crises strengthened
the Federal Republic of Germany, and by the end of the decade it was
a "regular" member of the Alliance, emotionally as well as juridically.
France, however, became much less regular, as de Gaulle in 1966 with-
drew his nation from NATO's integrated military structure, revising
both force plans and lines of communication and pushing Alliance
headquarters from Paris to Brussels. By the end of the decade, the
Alliance had adapted to this partial French withdrawal. American
troops in Europe were increased for the Berlin crises and then
decreased as they were withdrawn for Vietnam; some of Defense Secre-
tary McNamara's American systems analysts endeavored to show that
NATO could match Soviet conventional capabilities at acceptable
costs. The British nuclear deterrent developed as part of NATO, and
the French Force de Frappe came into being as a more independent
entity; but these did not satisfy the felt needs of the Europeans for a
stronger connection to American strategic forces, certainly not the
needs of the West Germans who were proscribed from owning nuclear
weapons. Various devices attempted to fill these needs, the most
notorious of which was the Multilateral Force (MLF) by which
Polaris-carrying ships would be manned by multinational NATO crews,
although the American president would retain final control of the
nuclear warheads. The scheme collapsed of its own political weight
and implausibility.
Later, in 1967, MC 14-3 replaced the massive retaliation of MC 14-2
with "Flexible Response," a doctrine that relied for deterrence and
defense on a spectrum of potential replies to various Warsaw Pact
aggressions. Although the specific responses to specific provocations
were not set forth, nuclear responses played an important and explicit
role, including a role in opposition to initial nonnuclear Soviet attacks.
In the same year, the Harmel Doctrine broadened NATO's role from a
purely military alliance to one that could also search, organizationally,
for disarmament and detente. At the end of 1969, the Alliance was
perhaps no less strong, but it was very different from what it had been
at the beginning of 1960.
Among the member nations, the leadership of the leader nation
began with John Kennedy, who, centrally interested in NATO, played
a major personal role after a false start in his Vienna meeting with
Khrushchev; and after the Cuban missile crisis showed his real
strength. Lyndon Johnson, however, turned his foreign interests
(always secondary to his domestic ones) to Vietnam, as did Robert
McNamara, the strong Secretary of Defense through most of the two
administrations. By nearly monopolizing American attention through
most of the decade, Vietnam worried the other NATO nations both
___ 70_____________________
25
because it distracted from Europe and because, having withdrawn from
colonialism themselves, the Europeans disapproved of what they saw as
American neocolonialism. U.S. Senate Majority Leader Mike Mans-
field worried the West Europeans even further by pushing his resolu-
tions to reduce American troop levels in NATO, putting more of the
burden on the now-well-off European members. In the meantime,
McNamara, in spite of his growing preoccupation with Vietnam, did
find the time to put forth two changes in strategic nuclear doctrine,
both highly relevant to NATO deterrence. The first, set forth in his
1962 Ann Arbor speech, moved the United States from Dulles' massive
retaliation toward a discriminating counterforce strategy; the second,
five years later, qualified the first by restressing the crucial deterrent
nature of the (perhaps inevitable) nuclear risks to cities. The new flex-
ibility on both counts was embedded for NATO in MC 14-3. The dom-
inant figure in European NATO was de Gaulle, who took France on its
almost independent way militarily while keeping Britain off the con-
tinent by keeping it out of the Common Market, but the de Gaulle era
in France ended with the student riots of 1968, as it had begun with
the Algerian riots of 1958. In the Federal Republic of Germany,
meanwhile, the change over the decade was symbolized by the shift of
the Chancellorship from Konrad Adenauer, a strong and strongly anti-
Soviet and anti-Communist leader, through several weak successors to
Willy Brandt, another strong leader who initiated the Ostpolitik rap-
prochement with the Soviets and the East Germans. One facilitating
factor for Ostpolitik was that the internal Communist party was never
serious in the Federal Republic, but by the end of the decade such par-
ties were no longer considered as serious threats to stability even in
Italy and France.
The Soviet Union got rid of Khrushchev after, and in part because
of, the Cuban missile crisis. Even before the Cuban affair, however,
the ending of the Berlin crises with the building of the Wall marked a
step back from the overhanging threat of real military aggression in
Europe. Under Brezhnev, the Soviet Union built its military strength
with multiple-warhead missiles (MIRVs) at the strategic level, and
adventured throughout the world; but after Berlin, it refrained from
hostile gestures across the European curtain. In Eastern Europe, how-
ever, Prague in 1968 reiterated that there had been no change from
Budapest in 1956. Within the Communist world as a whole, the very
major change was the shift from the Soviet-Chinese alliance that many
in the West in the 1950s had thought of as worldwide monolithic Com-
munism, to implacable hostility by the end of the decade. This was
not only strategically important in itself, it presaged similar but lesser
changes in the face of Communi . in Europe.
I
A.
26
Outside of Europe and North America, the 1900s saw the end of
European colonialism. More important, Vietnam signalled major
changes in the American relation to the Alliance. Together with the
changes in NATO itself and in the other nations, it meant that by the
end of the decade, U.S. leadership of NATO was much weaker than it
had been at the beginning, thus setting the stage for the difficulties of
the 1970s and the 1980s.
THE 1970s: DOUBTS
Within NATO, the membership structure remained stable and the
threat of Soviet aggression in Europe remained minimal, but the 1970s
were characterized by growing questioning of fundamental tenets, par-
ticularly of the quality of American leadership of the Alliance (or,
perhaps, the basic stability allowed the luxury of such questioning).
The decade started with the SALT and ABM agreements on U.S.-
Soviet strategic arrangements, which, although they were approved of
by the West Europeans, began to throw additional doubts on America's
ability or willingness to put its own homeland at risk by using nuclear
weapons against the Soviets in response to aggression in Europe.
These doubts increased substantially through the period, as the Soviets
gained effective strategic parity-the ability to put the United States at
about as much risk as the USSR in any nuclear exchange. Politically,
Watergate, the defeat in Vietnam, and the weak presidencies of Gerald
Ford and Jimmy Carter eroded U.S. international as well as domestic
leadership. Carter began his administration by pushing the neutron
bomb on European governments made reluctant by domestic opposi-
tion, and then backing off the bomb. As a result mainly of this and of
worries about strategic parity, Helmut Schmidt, who had succeeded
Brandt as Chancellor after having been his Defense Minister, took a
proposal initiated by NATO's Nuclear Planning Group to reinstall
American intermediate-range nuclear missiles in Europe, and made it
into a political test for the United States and the Alliance. At the end
of the decade, the Schmidt proposal resulted in the two-track decision:
to install in Germany, Britain, Italy, and the Low Countries the Inter-
mediate Nuclear Force (INF) of Pershing II ballistic missiles and cruise
missiles but (mainly as a bow to peace movement Removers in Europe)
to negotiate with the Soviets over the mutual reduction of INF and the
corresponding SS-20 force, which the Russians had begun to install.
Among the member nations, the United States had a weak
presidency from the beginning of Watergate in 1973 to the end of the
decade. Particularly after the deflation of Nixon, the dominant figure
- - '. , , , , 4 W
27
in American foreign policy through 1976 was Henry Kissinger, but the
ultimate fiasco in Vietnam together with decade-long economic prob-
lems weakened both foreign and domestic policy. In Germany, without
discontinuing Brandt's Ostpolitik, Schmidt added an Alliance-oriented
personal military expertise. Giscard d'Estaing was a somewhat char-
ismatic but not strong French leader. The British Labour leadership of
Harold Wilson and James Callaghan remained pro-NATO. For Britain
and for the other European members of the Alliance, the major event
was that the United Kingdom finally committed itself firmly to Europe
by joining the Common Market. For Western Europe as for the
United States, however, the 1970s were filled with bad economic news,
mainly because of the rapid increases in petroleum prices as the OPEC
cartel took hold. In spite of economic sourness, however, the internal
Communist threat, which had decreased in the 1960s, virtually disap-
peared. In Italy and in Spain, which had moved toward NATO after
the post-Franco democratization, Communist parties became "Euro-
communist," under partial control from Moscow at worst. The French
party became so tame that Franqois Mitterand initially included it in
his Socialist government with little distress in NATO.
The Soviet Union remained firmly under the leadership of Brezhnev,
with little internal change. The confrontation with China continued,
exacerbated by the rapprochement between the United States and
China. The European satellites began to differentiate themselves,
within limits, from the Soviet Union and from each other, culminating
in the birth of the Solidarity movement in Poland. Militarily, as
noted, the Soviets achieved effective strategic parity, which, together
with the installation of the SS-20 missiles in Europe, upset NATO con-
siderably. At the end of the decade, the occupation of Afghanistan
poisoned East-West relations, although NATO came to no agreement
on how to treat with it.
Outside of Europe and North America, the major phenomenon was
OPEC's taking control of petroleum markets and prices. The conse-
quent many-fold increase in the world price of oil dominated the
decade economically and was largely responsible for the overall politi-
cal sourness of the period as well. Additionally, the rapid growth of the
Japanese economy presented substantial competitive problems for the
West.
NATO thus entered the 1980s, the "current" period of the debates
analyzed in this report, in a state of some disarray and a mild degree of
psychological as well as economic depression. The politics of depres-
sion led to major political changes in the Western nations. Because
the previous leadership had been to the left, the new leaders were
almost all conservatives: Ronald Reagan coming in for Jimmy Carter
m jA
-4. _V~ Zr.
28
in the United States; Margaret Thatcher for James Callaghan in Brit-
ain; and Helmut Kohl for Helmut Schmidt in Germany. The major
exception was France, where the Socialist Francois Mitterand replaced
Giscard as president, but after a few years Mitterand was forced to
accept the conservative Jacques Chirac as Prime Minister. In the
Soviet Union, Brezhnev was followed by two short-lived successors,
and then came Gorbachev and major change.
In NATO, initial installation of INF commenced over substantial
domestic opposition. The political ability to actually install the INF
missiles was taken as a successful test of NATO's manhood, a percep-
tion that set the stage for the debate later in the 1980s about nego-
tiated removal of the missiles. The initial basis for the removal nego-
tiations of 1987 was that to mute the internal political opposition in
1981, NATO had offered the Soviets the zero option of removing the
entire INF in return for removal of all Soviet SS-20s, in the sure belief
that Brezhnev would turn it down. He did turn it down, but Gor-
bachev accepted it, throwing the Alliance into disarray. The disarray
had begun, however, when as president of the United States and nomi-
nal leader of the Western Alliance, Ronald Reagan, alone and then in
combination with Gorbachev, went through a series of events-the
"Evil Empire" speech, SDI, the Libyan raid, Reykjavik-that left the
Europeans muttering about unpredictability and lack of consultation.
All this provides the meat for the debate with which this report is
concerned. The remainder of this section briefly takes up the develop-
ment of the eight major issues listed in the last section, as they have
developed through NATO's history.
At least until Gorbachev, discussion of most of these issues had
changed very little since the Alliance reformulation of the 1960s. Two
of the issues, in fact, changed hardly at all since the early 1950s. The
first of these concerns The Soviet Role. This debate might be charac-
terized, slightly unfairly, as George Kennan versus George Kennan. In
his seminal 1946 paper, "The Sources of Soviet Conduct," prepared as
a commentary for Secretary of Defense James Forrestal and then pub-
lished over the nom de plume, "X", Kennan wrote:
[I]t is clear that the main element of any United States policy toward
the Soviet Union must be that of a long-term, patient but firm and
vigorous containment of Russian expansive tendencies.... Soviet
pressure against the free institutions of the Western world is some-
thing that can be contained by the adroit and vigorous application of
counterforce at a series of constantly shifting geographical and politi-
cal points, corresponding to the shifts of Soviet policy, but which
cannot be charmed or talked out of existence.
3
3
X, "Th Source of Soviet Conduct," Foreign Affairs, July 1947, reprinted in Foreign
Affairs, Spring 1987, pp. 861-62.
v, ......
I
29
Kennan contends that the Soviet pressure against free institutions he
discussed was not military. "In no way did the Soviet Union appear to
me, at that moment, as a military threat to this country."
4
And a care-
ful reading of the "X" paper bears him out; but from the point of view
of the debate, what is more important is that the analysis was widely
interpreted as calling for military containment, and this interpretation
was a major influence on subsequent American policy. It provided the
intellectual backing for the Truman Doctrine, which was used initially
to defend against Soviet-backed incursions in Greece and Turkey, and
for the subsequent extension of the Doctrine to other areas. In
Europe, it formed the basis for the military alliance, particularly after
the Berlin Blockade and then the Korean invasion demonstrated that
Soviet pressure could indeed be explicitly military as well as political.
This interpretation of Kennan's "containment" concept governs one
Western view of the Soviet Union down through the debates of today;
the opposing view, however, is the one Kennan himself has taken for
many years and takes now:
It is entirely clear to me that Soviet leaders do not want a war with
us and are not planning to initiate one. In particular, I have never
believed that they have seen it in their interests to overrun Western
Europe militarily, or that they would have launched an attack on
that region generally even if the so-called nuclear deterrent had not
existed. But I recognize that the sheer size of their armed forces is a
disquieting factor for many of our allies.... For all of these reasons,
there is now indeed a military aspect to the problem of containment
as there was not in 1946; but what needs most to be contained, as I
see it, is not so much the Soviet Union as the weapons race itself.'
In any case, what is important for this report is that these two posi-
tions on containment have governed the two major views of the USSR
incorporated into the NATO arms debate since the start of the
Alliance-from Stalin through Malenkov, Khrushchev, Brezhnev,
Andropov, and Chernenko; through cold war, crisis, blockade, and
d6tente. It may be that Gorbachev is different enough from his prede-
cessors that the Soviet Union will really change this time; the possibil-
ity has begun to affect the debate.
The second issue that has changed but little is that of Conventional
Weapons. The Lisbon conference of 1952 called for 96 divisions, some
60 of them active, to defend Western Europe conventionally against
overwhelming Soviet troop strength. Neither the wealthy United
States nor the poor nations of Europe were willing to pay for them; the
4
Gorgs F. Kennan, "Containment Then and Now," Foreign Aufairs, Spring 1987,
p. 886.
3lbid., pp. 888-889.
it .
mrn l -ne mLit
30
NATO conventional force has consisted of roughly half those numbers
ever since. Those numbers have long since gone by the board, but
every NATO supreme commander since Lisbon has asked for substan-
tially more than he had, to enable him to fulfil his conventional
defense responsibilities; and many analysts in a position to be more
objective have called for similar increases. But neither the wealthy
United States nor the now-wealthy nations of Europe have been willing
to pay.
The first force goals of the 1950s were not closely linked to the
threshold at which conventional defense would have to be abandoned
in favor of nuclear weapons, but by the early 1960s the connection had
been established, and the issue of The Conventional-Nuclear Link has
remained a constant in the debate ever since. Two statements from
1960-61 apply almost as well in the late 1980s.
From [the Russian] standpoint the problem of successful aggression
in Europe is to find a level and kind of attack large enough to be use-
ful, but small enough to be well below the threshold risking American
nuclear response.... It is becoming more and more widely accepted
among critics of NATO that the most important task for the alliance
today is to raise by conventional means the threshold of attack that
the Russians would have to launch in order to be successful.'
and
If NATO is not willing to make the effort required for a conventional
defense, its other option would be to rely more heavily on tactical
nuclear weapons.... Deterrence would be achieved not by protect-
ing against every contingency, but by confronting the Soviets with
the prospect of a conflict with incalculable consequences.'
The authors of the two statements, both still members in good stand-
ing of the Maintainer school in the current NATO debate, would not
necessarily take the same points of view today, but both would agree
that the issue of the conventional-nuclear link remains central. So
would those in the other schools who might want to treat the link dif-
ferently (the European Couplers) or do away with it entirely (the
American Withdrawers and the European Removers).
Indeed, for the Couplers, the issue is less that of the precise
conventional-nuclear threshold than of the feared attenuation of the
link connecting American strategic nuclear weapons to European
defense and deterrence-the issue of The U.S. Commitment to NATO,
which for them remains central to the NATO debate. Pierre
6
Albert WohIatetter, "Nuclear Shari. NATO and the N+I Country," Foreign
Affair, April 1961, pp. 381-82.
7
Henry A. Kissinger, The Neceauify for Choke, Harper, New York, 1960, p. 526.
A
31
Lellouche, one of the leading prophets of the end of the American com-
mitment, quotes Frangois Mitterand (before Mitterand was elected
president of France) as saying. "The Alliance rests on a fiction:
American intervention in Europe in case of Soviet aggression."
s
Lelouche himself stresses the role of strategic parity in weakening this
commitment:
This new menace of a Soviet counterforce strike (rather than solely
anti-city) has for the moment no more than a limited effect on the
security of the American continent as such. This is because of the
conjectural character of a Soviet surprise attack against American
silos, and the second-strike capacity which the Americans would
retain even after such an attack. In contrast, this menace would
have different consequences for American extended deterrence in
Europe. The risk of seeing its ICBMs preventively destroyed adds to
the already great uncertainty that already weighs on the employment
of strategic systems by the American president in case of conflict in
Europe?
But (as Lellouche points out) the French expressed almost identical
doubts long before the advent of strategic parity. General Pierre Gal-
lois, the theorist of de Gaulle's independent deterrent wrote in 1961:
And how believe that the Strategic Air Command would use its
weapons of massive destruction for the sake of a third party, if
America thereby risked, in reprisal, a setback of two centuries from
the extent of the damages suffered! Then what becomes of the
indispensable credibility of the reprisal against aggression?"

The point is not that nothing has changed. Rather, it is that although
much has changed in 25 years, the debate over the crucial issue of the
U.S. commitment has changed very little. The European Couplers
have always been afraid that the American fear of opening the
Pandora's box of nuclear war might prevent the Americans from using
nuclear weapons in behalf of even their closest allies. The quarter-
century of changes, including the onset of strategic parity, has added
only one more element to the mutual fears and doubts that have
resonated across the Atlantic almost since the beginning of the Alli-
ance.
Four of the issues-The American commitment, The conventional-
nuclear link conventional force levels, and The Soviet role--are thus old
ones, having been debated in much their current form since the
sFmn9oi itterd,i in Le Monde, July 31, 19W, quoted in horn
Lellouche, LAvenir de la Guerre, Mazarine, Paris, 1965, p. 39.
l ,pp.
1
Pierre allois, o7w Balne of Ternr, Houghton Mifflin, Boston, 1961, p. 191.
. n mm mmm m ~mm mm W k - ..
32
beginning of the Alliance in the 1950s or at least since its reformula-
tion into its present shape in the 1960s. The other four issues are
somewhat newer, at least as they are now discussed.
Discussions of The Europeans' Commitments to Themselves might
have moved into their current form in the 1960s, as fears of Germany
past faded in the minds of the other NATO members. But de Gaulle's
difficulties in reconciling a Europe des Patries with a more unified ver-
sion under distinct French leadership postponed such changes, and the
debate did not really take its current form until the suspicions of the
United States induced by Carter, Reagan, and strategic parity grew
stronger in the late 1970s and the 1980s.
Before and after the Soviet suppression of the Prague spring in
1968, the primary assumption about NATO's role in Eastern Europe
was that NATO did not have a role in Eastern Europe. Militarily that
remains the case, but from the advent of Ostpolitik through the rise
and fall of Solidarity, it has become increasingly clear that NATO
members and to some degree the organization itself can and want to
play a political role in the differentiating world of what are now seldom
called the "Soviet satellites." This role has become the subject of a
changing debate.
The issue of NATO and the Rest of the World has taken on many
different shapes, from the American involvement in Vietnam, through
the rise and decline of OPEC, to the terrojn and Persian Gulf
scenarios of the 1980s.
Arms Control and Disarmament have been debated throughout the
period. In the early 1960s proposals related to Europe took the form of
"disengagement" of NATO and Warsaw Pact forces in central Europe.
This was not taken very seriously by the American Maintainer and
European Coupler establishment, and it faded. From the mid-1960s to
the mid-1980s, "serious" arms control discussions concerned the stra-
tegic weapons of the two superpowers and eventuated in the ABM
treaty and SALT I and II. So far as European arms control was con-
cerned, the establishment used ongoing negotiations to provide a politi-
cal sop to the Remover peace movement. The second track of NATO's
1979 INF two-track decision-the offer to negotiate down the levels of
intermediate missiles being installed-and the 1981 offer to zero them
out if the SS-20s were also removed, were offered in the belief that
they were not serious because the Soviets would never agree. When
Gorbachev did agree in 1986, the issue and the debate became very
serious indeed and turned out to have an intimate relationship to the
central issue of the American commitment.
The NATO debate of the late 1980s thus turns on the old issues, in
somewhat but not very new forms. The American commitment
i _ ' , ; :,, .' ..",
Im ,v -
33
remains pivotal; the nuclear-conventional link, nuclear weapons issues,
the Europeans' commitments to themselves, and the arms control-
disarmament debates all depend in greater or lesser degree on under-
standings of what that commitment is and beliefs about what it should
be. The debate over levels of conventional forces is also related to the
commitment issues, but proceeds on even more ancient premises. And
the question of whether Soviet policy toward the West is changing sub-
stantially has become the wild card that may well start all the other
debates off in very new directions.
I!
....
MII. THE COUPLERS
For Germans and other Europeans whose memory of the
catastrophe of conventional war is still alive and on whose
densely populated territory both pacts would confront each
other with the destructive power of modem armies, the
thought of an ever more probable conventional war is terrify-
ing. To Germans and other Europeans, an ever more prob-
able conventional war is, therefore, no alternative to war
prevention through the current strategy, including the option
of a first use of nuclear weapons.
-Karl Kaiser, Georg Leber, Alois Mertes,
and Franz-Josef Schulze
1
For de Gaulle, the fate of the American nuclear guarantee
was sealed. Sooner or later, he predicted, an "equilibrium of
deterrence" would replace American superiority, and this
"equilibrium" would protect only the two superpowers "and
not the other countries of the world, even though they found
themselves tied to one or the other of the two colossal
powers."
-Pierre Lellouchel
NATO is about Europe, so the Couplers, the mainstream European
School of Thought, provide an appropriate place to begin this survey.
The first of the two quotations, by four Germans, including spokesmen
for both the Christian Democratic (CDU) and Socialist (SPD) parties,
summarizes succinctly the major common European value judgment,
one sometimes forgotten by Americans: Europeans value their own
self-preservation, and their historical experience leads them to fear the
conventional war they have experienced almost as much as the nuclear
war they can imagine.
The European dilemma, however, is based on the belief that the
nuclear threat is needed to deter conventional war. The ultimate
nuclear deterrent for the West is the American strategic force, and, as
Lellouche's quote from a 1964 de Gaulle press conference illustrates,
West Europeans have been nervous for many years about the reliability
of the commitment of this force to their defense. Issues of I
commitment-the commitments of European nations to each other as
'Karl Kaiser, Georg Leber, Alois Mertes, Franz-Joseph Schulze, "Nuclear Weapons
and the Preservation of Peace," Foreign Affair, Summer 1982, p. 1164.
2Pierre Lellouche, L'Avenir de la Guerre, Mazarine, Paris, 1985, p. 47.
34
'., '
35
well as that of the United States to Western Europe as a whole-and
of how these commitments might be implemented are central to the
European portion of the debate. Indeed, it is this focus more than any-
thing else that distinguishes the European Couplers from the American
Maintainers.
The eight issue categories are analyzed in four groups:
" Alliance political issues, including the U.S. Commitment to
NATO, the Europeans' Commitments to Themselves, and the
Rest of the World;
" Military issues: the Conventional-Nuclear Link, and Conven-
tional Weapons;
" The Opponent. the Soviet Union, and Eastern Europe;
" Arms Control, as one output of the East/West interaction.
This section takes up the groups of issues in the above order.
(Because the Americans stress military analysis of NATO issues, the
section on the Maintainers reverses the order of the first two groups.)
The section ends with a summary of Coupler recommendations; in
spite of the broad range of Coupler viewpoints manifested on the issues
of the debate, their common stress on the central role of American
nuclear deterrence in their own preservation ultimately leads them to a
much narrower set of policy recommendations.
ALLIANCE POLITICAL ISSUES
The U.S. Commitment
The French, since de Gaulle, have been the most concerned about
the strength of the American commitment. Lellouche, an Assistant
Director of the Institut Fran~ais des Relations Internationales (IFRI), is
at the forefront of those who contend that de Gaulle was prescient in
his "sooner or later" prediction of the erosion of the American nuclear
commitment. Lellouche believes that the time has come and that
France and the rest of Europe must recognize this and plan accord-
ingly:
General de Gaulle's defense system which we have inherited was
essentially conceived by him at the beginning of the 1960s. Another
world. A world marked by the incontestable nuclear superiority of
the United States and by an ,mprecedented economic boom, with
these elements assuring the stability of Germany and of Europe at
the heart of the Atlantic Alliance, and permitting the birth of the
process of European construction.... Nuclear arms technology
im am m mnmom~m m ~nm , . .. m . . m
36
hardly hinted at its first great revolution: intercontinental missiles
had only just appeared, the conquest of space had no more than
begun, and guidance precision was measured in kilometers.
On all of these points, we almost live today on another planet. Not
only has the USSR put an end to American nuclear superiority, but
it has established in Europe an absolute superiority as much nuclear
as in conventional forces, thus creating political instability at the
heart of NATO.
3
And, as a result:
The famous American "umbrella," though it may still retain an
important political value, has lost its strategic significance. Without
doubt, America will fight for Europe-but it will fight with conven-
tional armies, without risking uncontrollable escalation to the nuclear
level'
Complementing Lellouche's strategic thinking, Jimmy Goldsmith,
the Anglo-French publisher of the largest French weekly newsmaga-
zine, L'Express, added an analysis of American demographic and
economic change, and then echoed a series of arguments for reduced
commitment that he had heard within the United States. In an article
widely discussed in France, he wrote that:
San Antonio, Texas, is now largely Mexican. Miami is a sort of capi-
tal of Latin America. Los Angeles aspires to become the same for
the Pacific. The European sensibility and heritage is on the decline.
The volume of American commerce with the Pacific region has
exceeded that of commerce with Europe....
The debate is not limited to the left or the right; neither to isolation-
ists nor internationalists.... The reasons for change are identifi-
able: (1) Americans have the conviction that chronic assistance to
those who do not need it is injurious.... (2) Americans think that
Europe potentially has all that it needs to defend itself.... (3) The
softness [toward the Soviets] of European foreign policy is considered
a "polluting" element for American foreign policy.... (4) When an
alliance is made up of a dominant partner and a number of weaker
ones, the distortions are evident.... (5) At a time when Europeans
criticize the budget deficit ($221 billion in 1986) and the balance-of-
payments deficit ($140 billion) of the United States, the cost of parti-
cipation in NATO is an argument well-used by partisans of retreat.'
3
Lsllouche, L'Avenir de la Guerre, pp. 28-29.
4Ibid.,
p. 88.
"Jimmy Goldsmith, "Le Levier de Is fens," L'Exprea, February 17-March 5, 1967,
pp. 37-38. In his role as Anglo-French financier, Jimmy Goldsmith is Sir James
Goldsmith.
37
Lellouche and Goldsmith express a common French view of the ero-
sion of the American commitment, but they express it somewhat more
extremely than many of their countrymen. Francois Heisbourg, an
influential French analyst and official who has become Director of the
International Institute for Strategic Studies (IISS) in London, for
example, contends in a review of Lellouche's book that less has
changed than he implies: "That the American guarantee was categori-
cal is not new, and France, in its time, had considered this situation
sufficiently disquieting to create a national deterrent force."" And
several writers suggest that many of thE problems are based more on
the idiosyncracies of the Reagan administration than on any funda-
mental American tendencies.
7
In any case, most French analysts and officials agree that either fun-
damental strategic changes or current ideologies will cause the United
States to reduce its commitment to NATO, although a few argue that
American vital interests will continue to support the commitment.
8
This discussion began before the suddenly serious U.S.-Soviet nego-
tiations in 1987 over NATO's nonserious (in 1981) "zero-zero" proposal
to remove all U.S. and Soviet INF missiles from Europe. Zero-zero
caused additional consternation, with worries centering on whether it
was the first step down "the slippery slope" to full denuclearization of
Europe and thus full abrogation of the American commitment. Even
before the 1987 negotiations, these concerns had received a major boost
from the November 1986 Reagan-Gorbachev Reykjavik meeting, where
the President's failure to consult the allies, and his apparent tendency
to present proposals without having thought them through, added
greatly to West European insecurities. One post-Reykjavik statement,
by French Prime Minister Jacques Chirac to the Western European
Union, shows both the extent of disquietude and the degree to which
official France was willing to put this tactfully on the record. Discuss-
ing potential removal of the intermediate range missiles, Chirac said:
If one could only be grateful for the declared intention of the Soviets
to dismantle most of their 88-20s, one could but hope to avoid the
possibility that the eventual removal of the American missiles would
not begin a weakening of the tie between Europe and the United
States.... We can never repeat frequently enough that the danger
Fangois Heisbourg, "Ralit6s et illusions," Le Monde, 1985.
7s, for eiample, Pierre Hassner, "L'upe entre les htats-Unis at l'Union
Sovietique," Commentaire, Spring 1986, p. 7.
SFor an example of the latter, see Yves Boyer, "The Development of the Strategic
Rationale for United States Forces in Europe," paper presented to the Conference on
Conventional Forc, jointly sponsored by The RAND Corporation, IFR, and the Royal
Institute of International Affairs, at Wiston House, England, March 1987.
i . ' .
A - ( .
.. . . .
38
to our existence presented by the formidable nuclear, conventional,
and classical arsenal of the East must always be seen in its totality.
Considering the inherent superiority of the Soviet Union in conven-
tional and chemical forces on the European continent, security over
the long term will continue to require the presence in West Europe of
a sufficient number of American nuclear armsy
In addition to its audible whistling in the dark over continuation of the
American commitment, Chirac's statement is notable for the continued
public agreement by a French official that, even with its own indepen-
dent nuclear deterrent, France still must count on American weapons
as well. It should also be noted that President Frangois Mitterand,
Chirac's political opponent but resident of the same political home in
the French constitutional "cohabitation," appeared far more relaxed
about the same matters.
10
The British Couplers," although concerned with the same issues,
differ in tone and substance from the French. If the French are
tensely worried about a diminishing U.S. commitment and believe the
diminution to be the result of such objective changes as strategic parity
and changing American ethnicity, the British are fairly relaxed, feeling
that much of the apparent erosion is subjective and should be
approached under the banner of "Come, let us reason together."
The prevailing British view has been expressed in a series of articles
by Frederick Bonnart, a retired Army officer who edits NATO's Sixteen
Nations, an unofficial journal published in Brussels. Bonnart is clear
on both the need for maintaining the Alliance in something like its
current state, and the cooperative way in which this should be done:
[Hiowever well matched Soviet conventional power in Europe may
be-and at present it is not-there can be no security for Europeans
in the long term without the presence on their continent of sizable
American nuclear and conventional forces.
12
Marriages are for better or for worse, for good or for evil. Alliances
may be a little more flexible. But both stand to gain by a mature
OJacques Chirac, -Allocution du Premier Ministre devant l'Assemble de l'U.E.O,"
Paris, December 2, 1986, in Ministire des Affaires atrangbres, Direction des Affaires
Politiquee, Questions Politico-Militaires, 2ime Semestre 1985, Ann6e 1986, pp. 164-166.
108m for example, Jim Hoagland, "A Horse Race in France," in the Washion Post,
April 3, 1987, p. A2.
"Politically, this School includes the Conservatives and a few remaining "right-wing"
members of the Labour Party, although mainstream Labour is in the Remover category.
The Liberal-Social Democratic Alliance has also been largely Coupler and has taken offi-
cial positions consistent with this viewpoint, but much of the LIberal segment has stayed
substantially on the Remover side. At this writing, however, with the merging of the two
parts into a single party, which some Social Democrats are leaving, the ultimate position
is not clar.
UlFroderick Bonnart, "West Europe Ponders Soviet Aims," Intenionrl Herald 2-
bum, May 6, 197.
.... % : 4t
-~~~
4
I
mF
attitude of each partner toward the other. As in any cooperative
human endeavor, the cost to each should be considered less impor-
tant than the common benefit to both. In a matter of life and death,
it is only that which counts in the end.S
3
This is not to say that the British believe that no movement is tak-
ing place. Historian Sir Michael Howard sees substantial change hap-
pening, with more needed, but nothing like an end to NATO or a fun-
damental restructuring that might, for example, shift the Alliance to a
primarily European rather than an Atlantic basis. Howard stresses a
common British theme-that the Alliance has been slow in adapting to
change--quite different from the French idea that the world has begun
to fall down around our ears as the American nuclear commitment
comes into doubt. He suggests that, starting with 1949:
The American presence was wanted in Western Europe, not just in
the negative role of a deterrent to Soviet aggression, but in the posi-
tive role of a reassurance to the West Europeans.... There can be
little doubt that since 1949 changes have occurred, both objective and
subjective, on a scale comparable to those between 1815 and 1854, or
1870 and 1914.... What is needed today is a reversal of that pro-
cess whereby European governments have sought greater security by
demanding an ever greater intensification of the American nuclear
commitment; demands that are as divisive within their own countries
as they are irritating for the people of the United States. Instead we
should be doing all we can to reduce our dependence on American
nuclear weapons by enhancing, so far as is militarily, socially and
economically possible, our capacity to defend ourselves.
14
Howard's last sentence brings up another central theme in the
transatlantic debate over the U.S. commitment to NATO, that of
burden-sharing. This is not much talked about by the French who,
because they consider their own contribution to NATO to be an
independent one, are reluctant to either criticize the contributions of
others or defend their own. Many in the United States, though
strongly pro-NATO, believe that the Europeans should be bearing
much more of the economic and other weight; and this is much on the
mind of the British. But Foreign Secretary Sir Geoffrey Howe, after
suggesting that sudden unilateral attempts by the United States to
"equalize" burdens could turn out to be quite negative from the Ameri-
can as well as the European standpoint, contends that they are not
badly balanced in any case:
"lFrederick Bonnart, "Danprs of Divorce," NATO'. Siaeen Nations, February-March
1997.
4Michael Howard, "Reassurance and Deterrence: Western Defense in the 19S0s,"
Forein Afar, Winter 1982-1983, pp. 310-322.
I,
,;41- 11,
V L Tg
40
(Tihe most likely result of withdrawing the American -prop" might
well not be to spur the Europeans to stand on their own two feet and
multiply their own defense efforts. It could be more likely to make
them question whether their own commitments to each other were
still worth the sacrifices involved. It would certainly strengthen the
platform of those (happily a small minority at present) who have
always argued for European neutrality and/or accommodation with
the East....
Overall, the non-U.S. NATO allies do appear to be shouldering
roughly their fair share. (This paragraph will not, I hope, be taken
as European special pleading. Every sentence in it is taken from
Defense Secretary Caspar Weinberger's report to Congress of March
1984 about the balance of allied contributions.)
15
And finally, many of the British agree with other Europeans that
the problems of the role and commitment of the United States, what-
ever their fundamental basis, have been substantially exacerbated by
the policies and style of the Reagan administration. The British, like
the French and all other West Europeans, were deeply distressed by
President Reagan's nonconsulting unilateralism at Reykjavik. What-
ever remains of the "special relationship" encourages British writers to
comment more directly and pungently on American politics than do
the French. Even before Reykjavik, David Watt, former Director of
the Royal Institute of International Affairs, wrote:
Let us put our cards on the table. There are two basic views about
President Reagan's foreign policy. One, the Administration's,
appears to be accepted (if the opinion polls are to be believed) by the
majority of Americans. It is that the United States, after years of
weakness and humiliation, has once again faced the challenge of an
aggressive, expansionist Soviet Union, revived the global economy,
rescued the Western Alliance and generally reasserted true American
leadership in the world. The other view is shared to a greater or
lesser extent by much of the rest of mankind, with the possible
exceptions of the Israelis, the South Africans, President Marcos of
the Philippines and a few right-wing governments in Central and
South America. It is that the Reagan administration has vastly over-
reacted to the Soviet threat, thereby distorting the American (and
hence the world) economy, quickening the arms race, warping its own
judgment about events in the Third World, and further debasing the
languag of international intercourse with feverish rhetoric. A sub-
sidiary charge, laid principally by the Europeans, Canadians and
many Latin Americans, but frequently endorsed in the Arab world
and the Far East, is that in a desperate attempt to rediscover "leader-
ship," the United States under Reagan has reverted to its worst uni-
lateral habits, resenting and ignoring, when it deigns to notice, the
ibSir Geoffrey Howe, "ThOe European Pillar," Forewn Affaws, Winter 1964-1986,
pp. 384.
It,
, u |slnmj~ m I . l~~k sm e ms
m
'
- m
'
41
independent views and interests of its friends and allies. It is in my
experience almost impossible to convey even to the most experienced
Americans how deeply rooted and widely spread the critical view has
become.
1
s
Or, put with perhaps more typical English restraint by an even
stronger pillar of the Establishment, Field Marshall Lord Bramall,
retired Chief of the General Staff:
The question therefore that we should perhaps be asking ourselves is
whether... the somewhat erratic content of some of the policies that
sadly have recently been evident across the Atlantic, should somehow
be changing what we do. In general terms, I am sure that the answer
to the... question is emphatically
no.
1
7
Even after Reykjavik, and even after the reappearance of zero-zero,
not "changing what we do" as a West European response to actual or
potential changes across the Atlantic has been the standard British
response. Over the long run, moves in the direction of self-reliance are
inevitable and desirable, but, as Howard points out, they should be
gradual and constrained.
The German Couplers cover a broader spectrum in their views on
the U.S. commitment than do the French or the British: some German
views resemble the French tension of Lellouche, others the British
calm of Bramall. To be sure, the German Couplers-the governing
coalition of the Christian Democrats (CDU), Bavarian Christian
Socialists (CSU), and Free Democrats (FDP), plus a large portion of
the opposition Social Democrats (SPD)
1
8 -do all agree on the crucial
importance to the Federal Republic of the continued American nuclear
commitment. Opposition was widespread, for example, to the sugges-
tion for No First Use of nuclear weapons by NATO, tentatively put
forth in the early 1980s by the American "Gang of Four" (McGeorge
Bundy, George Kennan, Robert McNamara, and Gerard Smith). The
four Germans quoted at the beginning of this section-Karl Kaiser
(Director of the Deutsche Gesellschaft fur Auswartige Politih or DGAP),
Georg Leber (an SPD Bundestag Deputy and former Defense Minis-
ter), Alois Mertes (a CDU Deputy), and Franz-Josef Schulze (a retired
general and NATO commander)-wrote:
16
David Watt, "As a European Saw It," Foreign Affairs, Fall 1983, p. 521.
"Lord Bramall, House of Lords Official Report, Parliamentary Debates (Hansard),
Her Majesty's Stationery Office, London, 25 March 1987, Columns 194-195.
18
How large a portion is unclear on two grounds: First, estimates vary on how many
of the Social Democrats in the Bundastag or elsewhere are "moderates" like several
quoted in this discussion of the Couplers; second, it is not clear how immoderate the "left
wine is. Virtually the entire SPD remains committed to NATO and to the U.S. com-
mitment to NATO, but how to weigh this against various SPD antinuclear stances is les
well defined than for, say, the British Labour Party.
t
42
The tight and indissoluble coupling of conventional forces and
nuclear weapons on the European continent with the strategic poten-
tial of the United States confronts the Soviet Union with the incal-
culable risk that any military conflict between the two Alliances
could escalate to nuclear war.... Not only the inhabitants of the
Federal Republic of Germany but also American citizens help bear
the risks, the conventional as well as the nuclear. The indivisibility
of the security of the Alliance as a whole and of its territory creates
the credibility of deterrence.
[T]he proposed no-first-use policy would destroy the confidence of
Europeans and especially of Germans in the European-American
Alliance as a community of risk, and would endanger the strategic
unity of the Alliance and the security of Western Europe."1
In fact, however, this 1982 statement of principle papered over deep
German worries about the U.S. commitment, which antedate the No-
First-Use proposal let alone Reykjavik, and cracks in the German
Coupler front, which the 1987 zero-zero revival has turned into widen-
ing fissures. In 1981, Uwe Nerlich, Research Director of the major
German defense analyis institute, the Stifftung Wissenschaft und PoU-
tik, expressed great doubts about U.S. policy as it had manifested itself
in the 1970s:
Given the leading role of the United States in Western affairs, the
most distressing aspect of the current political reality is that the
United States no longer propounds a concept of world affairs within
which Western Europe could play roles at all commensurate with its
inner dynamics. In fact, U.S. policies no longer follow any design;
they are guided by crisis behavior as the occasions arise, without suf-
ficient instruments to control the outcomes....
If during the first Nixon term a more complex American approach
put the Soviet Union temporarily on the defensive, the primacy of
American domestic affairs imposed itself again with the end of the
Vietnam war and the climactic events of Watergate. To make
matters worse, the Carter administration painfully demonstrated that
competence is the key element in all relations with the Soviet
Union'20
The invidious comparison between Carter and Nixon might lead
some Americans to believe that this is a right-wing diatribe against
American softness, but Nerlich was no right winger in any conven-
tional sense. Six years later, he was even darker in his views of the
conservative governments that then ruled all the major NATO nations:
"Kaisr et al., "Nuclear Weapons and the Preservation of Peace," pp. 1159-1162.
20Uwe Narlich, "Change in Europe: A Secular Trend?" in Dadeka, Journal of the
American Academy of Arts and Sciences, Winter 1981; pp. 71-83.
. -.
43
[TIhe alliance tends to be engaged in a vicious circle: The weaker
the political leaderships, the more security policies are victimized by
domestic policies, which in turn overburdens democracies and often
lowers their quality, and, of course, this exacerbates the need for
political leadership, etc. The INF debate since 1986 is a case in
point. Friedrich Nietzche stated 110 years ago: "Those who aim
publicly at something too large and beyond their capacity will also
lack the capacity to disavow their aims publicly."
2
1
A part of the 1981 paper was devoted to the contention that "the
only way the Atlantic Alliance can persist is through social democratic
support."' This was apparently a shot in the civil war to save the soul
of the social democratic SPD for then-Chancellor Helmut Schmidt's
strongly pro-NATO, pro-nuclear policies. Schmidt lost the war and the
chancellorship, the SPD lost the government for at least a decade, and
the cracks in the Coupler consensus have become gulfs. Although
many members of the SPD remain Couplers in that they continue to
support NATO-perhaps a majority, depending on the precise line used
to delineate the School-even the moderates differ substantially on
nuclear issues from the CDU and from Nerlich, as will be seen below
in the discussion of German attitudes toward the zero-zero arms con-
trol proposals.
One reason for the SPD civil wars is that the West German
Couplers must keep on looking back over their shoulders at the
Remover peace movement, with its profound distrust of everything
American and nuclear. This is discussed in a 1983 analysis by Chris-
toph Bertram, former Director of 1ISS, now political editor of Die Zeit
of Hamburg-
While the [German] antimissile movement had acquired an unprece-
dented depth and articulation, it nevertheless remained the manifes-
tation of a minority. The efforts within the SPD to prevent the
party from drifting into opposition to the Atlantic Alliance reflected
this. They were motivated not only by the conviction of the leader-
ship that there was no alternative to NATO, but also by the realiza-
tion that no party opposed to the security link with the United
States would stand a chance with the conservative, security-minded
German electorate.
In any case, by 1987 the zero-zero negotiations caused, or revealed,
the great gap between the two sides of what had once been the German
2
1Uwe Nerlich, "Conventional Arms Control in Europe: The Objectives," in James
Thomson and Uwe Nerlich (eds.), Conventional Arm. Control and the Future of Europe,
Westview Press, Boulder, 1988.
22Nerlich, "Change in Europe: A Secular Trend?" p. 81.
23Christoph Bertram, "Europe and America in 1983," Foreign Afjiwa, Winter-Spring
1984, p. 627.
4........................ ... ' . ,
Coupler consensus. Both sides remained committed to NATO, to
dependence on the United States of the Alliance in general and the
Federal Republic in particular, and to the crucial role of the American
nuclear deterrent. But whether to endorse zero-zero, what would hap-
pen if and when it was adopted, and what to do next were all subjects
of major contention. On a political level, the issue divided the govern-
ment coalition, with FDP Foreign Minister Hans-Dietrich Gencher
favoring the zeroing out of all intermediate-range missiles; and CDU
Chancellor Helmut Kohl, who strongly opposed the removal of the
500-1000 kilometer-range weapons (the Short-Range Intermediate
Nuclear Force, or SRINF), being dragged into acquiescence by
Genscher and by American pressure. This will be discussed in the
arms control section below.
With regard to its effect on coupling, however, the anti-zero-zero
view is expressed analytically by Nerlich, who contends that the with-
drawal of American INF missiles would so weaken the link with the
United States that European deterrence would have to depend on
French and British nuclear weapons:
The zero option-a treaty agreement not to deploy U.S.
intermediate-range weapons in Western Europe for some quid pro
quo-raises fundamental questions about the maintenance of
NATO's deterrence strategy and for the foreseeable future can in no
way be justified on strategic grounds. However, were such an agree-
ment, a treaty of whatever kind resulting in a withdrawal of the
American INF, nevertheless to come about, then the French and
British nuclear forces would have to acquire completely new func-
tions.
2 4
But Gert Krell, the Director of the Peace Research Institute of
Frankfurt (which, in spite of its name, is not part of the antinuclear
peace movement), believes that the effects of zero-zero on the U.S.
commitment have been vastly overblown:
It is very difficult to understand that there should still be resistance
against this package in the West.... The objections are... not
credible. They sound schizophrenic when raised by French leaders
who complain about what they see as decoupling by the United
States, but who hold on to France's own and long-standing decou-
piing from the defense of Europe.... Coupling the United States to
Europe through nuclear escalation linkage is not a question of
hardware but of deterrence politics and metaphysics. Security
through extended deterrence cannot be enforced by the deployment
of nuclear weapons-of which there will be an abundance even after
24
Uwe Nerlich, "La force de dissuasion nucl6aire frangaise et Ia securit6 de Ia RFA,"
in Kaiser and Leflouche, p. 187. The volume was published simultaneously in German;
this and other quotations here are translated from the French version.
A
. .. - ., .. . -.
45
LRINF withdrawal on European soil or in the adjoining waters.
More important are the political unity of the alliance and the pres-
ence of U.S. troops.
2
'
Being fully dependent on the United States nuclear deterrent, the
Germans on both sides of these issues may just have thought about
them more thoroughly and more pragmatically than the philosophers
in the other major European members of NATO.
The Europeans' Commitments to Themselves
It has been abundantly clear since the beginning of the Alliance that
no other member than the United States had any individual capability
to stand up to Soviet military power. The independent nuclear forces
of France and Britain might enable those two nations to keep the
Soviets on the proper side of the Rhine and the Channel by mounting
essentially suicidal threats behind the deterrence of "the strong by the
weak," in the phrase used by the French. But implementation of the
threats would be a fatal remedy for a fatal disease, and for that reason
use of the independent nuclear forces for national purposes was uncer-
tain; pledges for Alliance purposes were even more uncertain in the
case of Britain, unmade in the case of France. These deterrents were
thus of little comfort to the rest of NATO, particularly to the Federal
Republic of Germany, the only large European nation bordering on the
Iron Curtain.
It has been equally clear since at least the 1960s when Western
Europe became economically strong that if the nations to the west of
the Elbe became a unity instead of a loose confederation, they could
command enough economic and military power to deter the Soviets,
defend against them and probably, if need be, defeat them.
Western Europe remains confederal at best, which Americans fre-
quently ignore when thinking in terms of "the European contribution."
In recent years, however, European uncertainties about the U.S. com-
mitment, American prods to share more of the burden, and economic
incentives to produce more weapons in Europe have combined to bring
various steps toward defense unity into consideration. Discussions
have had two foci: the broad one of a West European "alliance within
the Alliance," or at least more of a common contribution and strategy;
and the narrower possibility of a specifically Franco-German arrange-
ment at the center.
25Gert Krll, "Reyhjavik and After," Peace Research Institute, Frankfurt, April 1987,
mimeographed, pp. 13-14.
I .,; ",-
im m l m m lm mlmmm imm , m wmmmlm~m ~ ~ m mm mm m mm m mm m -
46
For the Germans and the French, it is this central arrangement that
dominates the debate, even though few of either nationality would
dissent from the longer-run objective set forth by Peter Schmidt of the
Stifftung Wissenchaft und Politik: "the renewed interest of France in
cooperating more closely with the Federal Republic of Germany could
be used as a 'moving force' to improve the state of European integra-
tion."2 More recently, in 1987 after zero-zero turned serious, French
analyst Jean d'Aubach set forth a far-reaching conclusion of the line of
thought that begins with fear of U.S. abandonment:
The probability of a diminution of the American commitment in
Europe is not negligible.... This is the reason why Europe has no
alternative solutions in the next three decades: it must possess
nuclear weapons to guarantee its security.... It seems that the "jux-
taposition" of the French and British capabilities could reach this
result.2
7
Few French or British-or Germans-would go that far, however.
On the other side (and somewhat earlier) former Chancellor Helmut
Schmidt grumbled:
On balance, I have come to think that General De Gaulle was right
in his belief that the British are not really prepared to cast their lot
with the rest of the European nations.... The British will join the
club only if they cannot prevent it from being successful. (If this
sounds harsh, I apologize to the British.)"
Such harshness would command less than a consensus in Germany or
France.
In any case, what is more important than the specific view of Brit-
ain is the fact that that view is not very important in the debate, nor is
d'Aubach's Franco-British nuclear melding- Most German and French
debaters are intense about their own relationship, vague about its
extension to "Europe" as a general entity, and don't think any more
than do Americans about the other specific nations making up this
general entity.
Virtually all the debaters hope for a stronger Franco-German rela-
tionship as a reinforcement of their mutual defense. Leilouche puts it
strongly:
2
6Peter Schmidt, "Europeanization of Defense: Prospects of Consensus?" The RAND
Corporation, P-7042, December 7, 1984, p. 34.
7Jean d'Aubach, "To Gather Europe for its Defense," CoYementire, Spring 1987
(trans. Michel Klein), pp. 1-9.
JHelmut Schmbidt, A Grand Strter for the West, Yale University Press, Nw Haven,
1985, pp. 52-M3.
. - n i m d lgl -nmmm~~mmmm~ m ammm n mm aqoa nmumu -.. w -- - -- -- -
47
(Ojur defense-of our survival as well as our liberties-begins on the
Elbe and not on the Rhine.... But in that cme, let us be clear with
ourselves, with Germany, and with the adversary. The only way to
transmit this signal consists of redeploying our forces, masing them
no Ionr on the Rhine, but on the ELe.W
This is particularly important to Lellouche because of his fears that a
weakened American commitment will leave the Franco-German alli-
ance as the mainstay of French defense. A secondary reason for
French interest in strengthening the linkage between the two nations is
that, as Helmut Schmidt puts it: "in the long run the Germans will
remain on the Western side only if the French help them and bind
them to the West."30 This thought could be expressed more tactfully by
Schmidt than by a French writer about Germany.
The hope has not been father to the relationship, however. The
Germans and the French had been trying for many years. In the
1970s, Schmidt, as Chancellor, became so disgusted with President
Carter's eccentricity (see Nerlich's comments above) that he tried to
substitute a German-French core for American leadership of the Alli-
ance. The concept faded when Giscard was replaced by Mitterand and
Schmidt by Kohl; but in 1984, he urged it on these two successors:
Cooperation began to decline during the administration of President
Carter. He confronted his European allies with surprising "lonely"
decisions, taken without consultation. The situation was not eased
when he made a number of subsequent corrections, since some of
these were put into effect just as surprisingly.... [The] vacuum in
transatlantic leadership was filled in considerable degree by the close
cooperation on foreign and economic policy between Giscard
d'Estaing and the German Chancellor [Schmidt]. With Giscard's
departure in the spring of 1981 and the accession to office a few
months earlier of Ronald Reagan, the situation worsened again....
Valery Giscard and I had it in mind to establish a considerably closer
link between, on the one hand, France's nuclear power and its con-
ventional army and, on the other, conventional German military
forces and German economic power. This goal today is a task for
Mitterand and Kohl."
1
At about the same time, he made all this much more concrete in a
Bundestag speech, where he proposed 18 German and 12 French divi-
sions, under French command, with some financial support for the
French effort coming from Germany. French-born Harvard Professor
2
OLllouche,
p. 281.
Helmut Schmidt, A Grand Sratey for the West, p. 56.
3t
Helmut Schmidt, "Saving the Western Alliance," New York Review of Books, May
31, 1984, pp. 25-27.
'sw-
.- i : ":. - : * ".? , ' .
(
5!
48
Stanley Hoffman reported that "The speech was barely discussed in
France."
32
In fact, starting in 1982, two years before the Schmidt proposal,
Chancellor Kohl and President Mitterand had begun a formal attempt
to move their two nations' security structures and strategies closer
together. It did not work well; Pierre Hassner evaluated the results of
this effort, much more modest than Schmidt's proposal, in a terse
phrase: "Never so much talk, never so little progress."33
The summary statement of a joint volume sponsored by the German
and French institutes, DGAP and IFRI, illustrates the problems and
the issues in this, or any, substantial Franco-German defense arrange-
ment, as seen from both sides. As put by the editors, Lelouche and
Karl Kaiser.
Four years after the "new start" in cooperation in the realm of secu-
rity, it must be conceded that the Franco-German defense partner-
ship is still a long way from achieving real substance....
From the French side, the dominant impression is that the major
French initiatives toward the Federal Republic, in principles, in polit-
ical platforms, and more concretely in technological, military, and
space policy, have paid hardly any return....
From the German side, the same impression of frustration dominates.
In spite of the positive movement seen by the French, the feeling of
distrust and deception lives on, reinforced by French defense con-
cepts still viewed as nationalistic.... While France has taken a sub-
stantial step to fill German needs for consultation on French tactical
nuclear weapons.., it is clear that rather than tending toward
greater cooperation on nuclear matters, forward movement has come
up against a barrier created by the convergence of psychological pres-
sures (on both sides), and by military considerations concerning the
conditions for employing French forces and tactical nuclear weapons,
as well as the political fallout of Soviet-American arms control nego-
tiations.
34
Why these frustrations? Perhaps the general answer is that put by
Dominique Moisi of IFRI: "France and West Germany have deeply
3Stanley Hoffman, "The U.S. and Western Europe: Wait and Worry," Foreign
Affairs, Spring 1984, p. 647.
33Pierre Hamner, "La Cooperation Franco-Allemande: Achille Immobile i Grand
Pas?" in Kaiser and Lellouche, p. 171.
54
Karl Kaiser and Pierre Lellouche, "Synthises et Recommendations," in Kaiser and
Lellouche (eds.), pp. 311-312. Their volume, Le Couple Franco-Aliemand et Ia Difense de
L'Europe, provides an excellent binational multivoiced treatment of the history and pos-
sibilitie of Franco-German defense cooperation.
... .. .
4.
different visions of the world. France at heart is a status quo power,
West Germany belongs to the revisionist camp.05
The more specific answers are based on this asymmetry. What the
Germans want from the French is basic but unachievable at least for
now, without it the partnership is likely to progress only incrementally.
What the French want from the Germans is less basic and more
achievable; but because the French needs are themselves marginal,
their effects, if achieved, are also likely to be incremental at most.
What the Germans want from the French, as summarized by CDU
Bundestag Deputy Markus Berger, is that:
We must assume in common-and, in the interests of the Federal
Republic, as long in advance as possible and under the best possible
conditions-a tight joining of Alliance contingents for a forward
defense [of Germany's Eastern border].
France must participate there with all its forces. Any distinction
between a zone protected and defended by the global power of
France, the French homeland for example, and a strategic rampart
defended by conventional forces, where France will participate only
on its own decision and with selected contingents, is in the interests
neither of the Germans nor of French security.c
French Prime Minister Chirac, however, maintains the distinction
between the inner and outer zones, taking the French commitment to
the Federal Republic as far as it can be taken in words alone, but mak-
ing clear that it does consist largely of words:
[I]f the survival of the nation rests at the frontiers of our land, its
security rests at the frontiers of its neighbors.
But
Crisis situations for which we must prepare so that deterrence
remains strong are, in truth, largely unpredictable. That is why
France attaches so much importance to conserving her freedom of
action-to avoid the deterioration of her forces in automatic engage-
ments for which they are badly adapted.
37
More recently, Chirac told the West Germans that if they are
attacked by the Soviets, France will come to their aid "immediately
Dominique Moisi, "As the Pillars of Postwar Stability Shake, Europe Looks for
Shelter," Intrnational Herald Tribune, April 4, 1987, p. 4.
85
Markus Berger, "La Force do Dissuasion Frangaie et la Securt6 do Is Rh6pblique
Federale d'Allemne," in Kaiser and Lellouche, p. 198.
"Jacques Chirc, Diocours du Premier Miniatre Devant l'Institd des Haute. Studes de
Do e Nationale, Septmber 12, 1986, mimeographed, pp. 13-14.
4i
50
and without reservation,"38 which is a stronger statement but still
leaves French forces under French command and retains the decision
to use nuclear weapons for the president of France, as President Mit-
terand pointed out at the same time. One French battalion has joined
a new Franco-German brigade, but that is far short of the 12 French
divisions contemplated by Schmidt, or of the French redeployment
desired by Lellouche. (And even the mild step-up of symbolism
marked by the Chirac statement and the brigade have caused visible
upsets to other member nations, particularly Italy, one more obstacle
to real movement.)
In any case, conserving freedom of action by maintaining the
independencs of the French deterrent and by keeping out of NATO's
integrated command structure is nearly unanimous among the French.
The Germans and the French are both realistic nations: They under-
stand that this is essentially unchangeable, that it is inconsistent with
the German goals as outlined by Berger, and that these facts put a
severe constraint on strengthening the Franco-German coupling.
A strong German central premise puts an equally binding constraint
on the coupling, and it is equally well recognized by the French: the
need of the Federal Republic for mainentance of the full NATO and
the full American connection. As put by Lothar Rueh, a Minister of
State in the Ministry of Defense:
It must be impossible for the Warsaw Pact to mount an attack that
will allow it to isolate German forces and to seize German territory
without immediately engaging the entire Alliance, and, in particular,
American and British forces.... The allied defense within the
NATO framework thus has the absolute priority over all other mili-
tary cooperation.
39
This emphasis on the Alliance as a whole and the United States in
particular is why Nerlich can write: "The French nuclear force
remains for the Federal Republic a second-order question."40
Although the German-American tie constrains Franco-German pos-
sibilities, it is well understood by the French who recognize that they
too depend in part on the American strategic deterrent. Several other
German-imposed constraints that annoy the French, while by no
means trivial, are less central. One is based on the fact that since
Willy Brandt the Federal Republic has been looking East toward the
German Democratic Republic. Benoit d'Aboville of the French Foreign
NQuoted in the Boston Globe, December 23, 1987, p. 9.
Lothar Ruehl, "1982: La Rlance de Ia Cooperation Franco-Allemande," in Kaiser
and Lellouche, p. 38. Italics added.
4Nerlich, "La Force de Dissuasion Nucl6aire Franaise," pp. 175-176.
a 51
Office mentions that "for a large fraction of French opinion, it is the
Germans who, in the name of Ostpolitik, insist on the pursuit of
dangerous chimeras."
41
The most basic French complaint about the Germans is more
economic than political. It concerns German cooperation in coproduc-
tion of weapons. Heisbourg is generally upbeat about Franco-German
cooperation in weapons production, but his title, "Cooperation in
Matters of Armaments: Nothing is Ever Achieved," reveals certain
doubts,
4 2
and in another piece published about the same time (1986)
his exhortation for the future exhibits some signs of pessimism:
There is little time for Europeans to put their act together, both in
terms of organization and of funding, if they wish to be true partners
in developing the combat systems of the 1990s-this is especially true
for West Germany. Even though the Federal Republic's military
R&D funding has increased by close to 30 percent in 1985, it will
take several years for Bonn to catch up with the French or the Brit-
ish in this realm.
3
The summation of the Franco-German debate over the Europeans'
Commitments to Themselves is that it is positive and limited. The
flirtation warms and cools but, as is inherent in a flirtation, it is essen-
tially symbolic; both sides understand that it remains far from a con-
summation. In the same 1987 issue of L'Express in which Jimmy
Goldsmith mentioned his doubts about the American commitment,
staff writer J6rome Dumoulin started off an enthusiastic article about
the future of the Paris-Bonn defense arrangement by quoting the
next-to-last sentence in Kaiser and Lellouche's summary of their
Franco-German volume: "The hour has come to make the great leap
toward tying together the destiny of the two lands."" What he does
not quote is the next sentence-the very last of the book-"It remains
to be seen if the occasion will be seized."
45
The British, properly enough, do not write about the special
Franco-German relationship; they certainly do not seem to fear it.
Rather, unlike the Germans and the French, they devote some
41Benoit d'Aboville, "La France, la RFA et Is Contr6le des armements: des Mal-
tendus a la Cooperation," in Kaiser and Lellouche, p. 248.
'
t
Frangois Heisbourg, "Cooperation en Mati6re d'Armements: Rien n'est Jamais
Acquis," in Kaiser and Lellouche, pp. 117-130.
Fran"ois Heisbourg, "Conventional Defense: Europe's Constraint's and Opportuni-
ties," in Andrew Pierre (ed.), The Conventional Defense of Europe: New Technokje# and
New St eiea, Council on Foreign Relations, New York, 1986, p. 99.
"J6rome Dumoulin, "Paris-Bonn: ce que d6mandent lea Allemands," L'Ezprua,
February 17-March 5, 1987, p. 39.
*Kaiser and Lellouche, p. 325.
j. 1
77"
. iN aila'*PH2 i a i , .
52
attention to the more general and abstract concept of a broader Euro-
pean military alliance within (or in the limit as a substitute for) the
North Atlantic Alliance.
One motivation, existent although far less ubiquitous in Britain than
among continental writers, is fear of American withdrawal, particularly
after Reykjavik. Lord Gladwyn, as Sir Gladwyn Jebb, a long-time
high-level British diplomat, exhibits a perceptible sense of panic about:
retreat as it were, into Fortress America ... In such distressing cir-
cumstances, short of having arrived at a credible form of European
political unity, there is every reason to suppose that Western Euro-
pean governments would be found willing and able to enter into some
arrangements which would leave the Soviet Union in a position to
exercise a sort of hegemony over the whole Continent.... There are
elements in Germany which might favour such a solution. Indeed we
should probably dismiss the classic German Drang nach Osten as
they call it, at our peril The only way to eliminate this danger is for
us to favour the genuine embodiment of Western Germany in an
operative European political union which, at the moment and unlike
the French, we seem as a government to be far from favoring.'
Most British officials and analysts take the American aberrations of
the mid-1980s more in stride, as being transitory. British interest in
greater unity on defense is longer run and lower key. Hedley Bull, an
Australian turned Oxford Professor, had an early-1980s vision of the
need for greater West European defense unity that was taken as a pos-
sibly appropriate direction for the long run; it still is by many Britons:
There are three reasons why the countries of Western Europe should
explore a Europeanist approach to their security. First, the old for-
mulas of North Atlantic unity do not adequately recognize the differ-
ences of interest, both real and perceived, that divide the United
States from its European partners.... Second, the policies advo-
cated by the [European peace movement], while they are based partly
on a correct perception of the differences of interest between the
United States and Western Europe, would expose the latter to Soviet
domination.... A third reason why Western Europe should explore
this new course relates to what may be called its dignity.... [It] is
demeaning that the rich and prosperous democracies of Western
Europe in the 1980s... should fail to provide the resources for their
own security and prefer to live as parasites on a transatlantic protec-
tor increasingly restless in this role ....
[A] Europeanitt policy is not viable unless the nations of Western
Europe can develop some appropriate form of unity. This is the
greatest uncertainty of all.... The object should be a West Euro-
pean military alliance-an alliance within an alliance, preserving the
4Lord Gladwyn, Houe of Lords Offickl Report, Parliamentary Debate (Hansard),
Her Majesty's Stationery Office, London, 25 March 1987, columns 190-191.
Il
wider structure of NATO. There might ultimately be a European
alliance without NATO.'
7
For other Britons, however, more pragmatically oriented toward the
short run, such an alliance, within or instead of NATO, is more of a
fantasy than a vision of the future. As put by Bonnart, a few years
after Bull's piece:
When the [European Communityl has overcome the problems of the
common agricultural policy, the integration of new members, Irish
neutrality, growing unemployment, industrial stagnation, and a few
others, it might well, in the next century, be ready to tackle its own
common defense.... Before such an EC defense could be created,
however, the [NATO] alliance would likely disintegrate rapidly, with
its members falling like ripe plums, one after the other, under the
domination of the one superpower then left on the Eurasian con-
tinent.0
Bonnart is more typical of the British than is Bull. The most seri-
ous part of the debate over the Europeans' commitments to themselves
takes place on the continent and concerns the Franco-German connec-
tion. And unless the American commitment goes as sour as Lellouche
predicts, both the French and the Germans recognize that progress is
likely to be slow.
The Rest of the World
The debate over the appropriate relationship of the Alliance to the
"rest of the world"-the two-thirds of the earth's population living
south of the Mediterranean, the Caucasus, Siberia, and the Rio
Grande-has undergone a sharp reversal since the beginning of the
Alliance. In the early 1950s, the French, Portuguese, and Belgian
empires were still close to their pre-World War II sweeps; so was the
British, except that it had lost the jewel in the crown and the raison
d'Otre for the rest, India; and the Dutch alone had shed their imperium,
the Dutch East Indies having become Indonesia. Before the Vietnam
war-the American Vietnam war of the 1960s, not the French war of
the 1950s-the NATO debate consisted in large measure of anti-
imperialist nagging from west of the Atlantic, and the debate within
the United States centered on the question of how much risk we should
take of weakening NATO in the name of anticolonialism. In 1959, for
example, former Secretary of State Dean Acheson wrote:
4
7
Hedlsy Bull, Zuopean Seif-Rebiane and the Reform of NATO,* preign Afain,
Spring 1983, p. 875-892.
'
5
Fredsrick Bonnart, "NATO Is an Alliance that Should Not Be Diaandu" lntern-
ional Herald lhbun, September 24, 1966, p. 4.
54
The most important objective today... is to hold together those
sources of strength we possess. These sources are North America
and Western Europe... This ... immediately draws the usual objec-
tions: "But you will throw in your lot with the colonial empires .....
If we would approach life from the point of view of formal moralistic
rules, this caveat may be interesting. But if we approach our prob-
lem from the point of view of solving it, then these considerations are
not at all important.
49
The combination in the 1960s of European shedding of most of the
remnants of empire and American fiasco in Vietnam reversed the
direction of moralizing and condescension. By 1987, Frenchman
Jimmy Goldsmith could be as understanding of American interests in
the Third World as Acheson had been of European interests 28 years
earlier.
In fact, the question of NATO's role outside of Europe-and, even
more important, the American role as it affected the commitment to
the Alliance-while on such occasions as the American bombing of
Libya it may have weighed more heavily on public opinion on both
sides of the Atantic than it did on officials and analysts-was a serious
one. Like other issues south of the Mediterranean, however, it did not
preoccupy most West European officials and analysts.
Peter Stratmann of the Stifftung Wissenschaft und Politk does take
the issue up in order to caution that it ought not misdirect NATO:
Many statements made by defense and foreign-policy experts in the
current Western and, in particular, American, debate on strategy
convey that Soviet strategy may have undergone a significant
change.... [T]he focus of Soviet political ambitions and strategic
preoccupation has shifted to third-world regions outside the NATO
area... Many analysts are so fascinated by the challenge to
"prepare for the unexpected" in the Third World that they tend to
neglect or deemphasize the all-too-familiar "eurocentric" scenarios of
"Soviet aggression against NATO." The indisputable fact that the
Soviet Union continues to accord priority to the enhancement of its
offensive capabilities directed against NATO has apparently had lit-
tle effect on their views.
5
0
And Former Chancellor Schmidt picks up another common Euro-
pean strand, that the United States oversimplifies and knows not what
it does in the Third World. To the south:
fDean G. Acheson, "The Premises of American Policy," OrbiB, Fall 1959.
0
OPeter Stratmann, "NATO Doctrine and National Operational Prioritis The Cen-
tral Front and the Flanks: Part II," in International Institute for Strategic Studies,
Adelphi Paper 207, pp. 35-42.
A *..|
West Europeans have a clear interest in peaceful solutions in Central
America. If the problems cannot be solved peacefully, then, in the
European perception, the danger might arise that the traditionally
good and close relations between Europe and Latin America might be
jeopardized. The credibility of the United States as the Western
leader might also be damaged in the eyes of a considerable part of
the West European public, and this would add a strain to the
European-America relationship.
51
To the east-the Middle East:
In my view there is no chance that the West, or the United States,
can bring about a "solution" for this troubled region that could possi-
bly bring about a stabilized peace. The truth is that no one in the
world can defend the Persian Gulf oil.... The best we can do is to
try from time to time to shift our weight a little bit to one side or the
other.
52
The questions of the appropriate Third World role of the Alliance
and of the United States within or outside the Alliance have continued
unsolved and indeed not even completely defined. In themselves, they
remain an abrasive rather than a major determinant of European
NATO policies or of the European side of the NATO debate; but they
provide another indicator of European fears of American desertion, or
at least distraction. The prevailing view is Stratmann's-keep your eye
on the center ring of the circus-but European Couplers are aware that
events in the Third World or American reaction to those events could
pull the action into the outer rings, particularly in the Middle East,
and that European or American public opinion could focus there no
matter what is going on in the center.
MILITARY ISSUES
The Conventional-Nuclear Link
The conventional-nuclear link represents the military side of the
issue of the U.S. commitment. The political question discussed above
was: How strong is the American commitment to use nuclear weapons
if necessary? The military question is: How will the commitment be
implemented if necessary? European positions on the conventional-
nuclear link, unlike positions on the more political aspects of the
debate, do not fit easily into national categories. The major disagree-
ment on the link is the one between Europe and the United States, and
51
H. Schmidt, A Gaond Strategy for the West, p. 83.
62
Id., pp. 8-96.
- t " ,-
nl
m
nnnli n el nnnliasu n n ionnn i
1 'V
56
even that is more a distinction in ways of thinking about the issue
than in recommended solutions.
I
The European-American difference can be described in the terminol-
ogy of operations analysis as a question involving two variables: The
European Couplers want to maximize one variable subject to con-
straints imposed by the other, the American Maintainers consider the
second the variable to be maximized, the other as the constraint.
* The West Europeans want a strategy that will maintain the
credibility of the link between any potential conventional war
on their continent and the American nuclear weapons that are
counted on to deter the war's outbreak in the first place. The
constraint is that the link to American nuclear forces cannot be
so automatic as to scare the Americans away from the initial
engagement.
" The Americans want a strategy that will avoid invoking nuclear
weapons. The constraint is that this must be done without
breaking the link completely, so that the nuclear deterrent to
Soviet aggression in Europe will remain credible enough to do
its job.
The two major American schools in the strategic nuclear debate con-
tain those who, like Albert Wohistetter, stress the controlled use of
nuclear weapons for deterrence, damage limitation, and warfighting;
and those who think it likely that such control will fail and that deter-
rence is, in McGeorge Bundy's term, "existential," depending on the
uncertainties associated with the very existence of nuclear weapons.5
Parallel to the American nuclear-control school are those Europeans
who recognize the distinction between conventional and nuclear
weapons and the importance of the threshold between the two, but
espouse a carefully conceived strategy including controlled nuclear use
as a potential defense and hence as a deterrent. Stratmann argues:
Given the comprehensive nature of the Soviet military challenge, it is
unfortunate that the Western debate on force development programs
has been based on a purported dichotomy between conventional and
nuclear options. What is required ir my view is a more complemen-
tary, integrated approach rather than the sweeping rejection of the
utility of nuclear weapons which is in fashion now. Of course, in
order to reduce NATO's current dependence on early employment of
nuclear weapons stronger conventional capabilities are mandatory.
But the availability of capable nuclear forces can significantly con-
tribute to the stability of conventional defense."
8se Levine, The Srute Nuclear Debate.
"K.-Peter Stratmann, 'The Conventional Balance of Forces in Central Europe," in
Netherlands Institute of International Relation., Clingpndael, Convenional Balance n
~Zvi
57
And Lelouche adds an argument for the doctrine closest to the hearts
of the American nuclear controllers, targeting of nuclear strikes on the
enemy's military forces rather than trying to deter him by threatening
his
cities.ss
This contrasts with Norwegian Johan Hoist's view of NATO deter-
rence, which draws on Bundy's existentialism:
The need to preserve a system of conventional denial and residual
nuclear deterrence in Europe... does not imply the elimination of
nuclear weapons, only a strengthening of the presumption against
inevitable use. As long as nuclear weapons exist and are deployed in
survivable and controllable fashion, no aggressor could have high
confidence that he could push 'his conventional advantage with
impunity. The residual capacity for nuclear response provides a kind
of existential
deterrence.5
6
From a similar point of view, SPD Bundestag Deputy Karsten Voigt
echoes the American arms controllers' doubts about the deterrent util-
ity of controlled counterforce strategies: "So long as it is even faintly
conceivable that a threat of selective nuclear strikes could lead to a
major nuclear war and thus to mutual destruction, the threat itself [of
a controlled response]-by rational standards-is not credible."
57
The European debate has many layers. NATO's "Flexible
Response" doctrine, official Alliance policy since 1967, is summarized
succinctly by the German foursome whose statement about Europeans'
indifference between conventional and nuclear war waged on their ter-
ritory headed up this section:
The strategy of flexible response attempts to counter any attack by
the adversary-no matter what the level-in such a way that the
aggressor can have no hope of advantage or success by triggering a
military conflict, be it conventional or nuclear. The tight and indis-
soluble coupling of conventional forces and nuclear weapons on the
European continent with the strategic potential of the United States
confronts the Soviet Union with the incalculable risk that any mili-
tary conflict between the two Alliances could escalate to nuclear war.
Europe: Problems, Strategies and Technologies, Zoetermeer, The Netherlands, May
11-13, 1984, p. 13.
*~
5
Leilouche, pp. 259-260. Atypically among Europeans, Lellouche's nuclear concept
* is close to that of the Americans of the Wohlstetter school, who contend that their
opponents favor counter-city targeting. Americans of the Bundy school deny this, assert-
ing that the threat to the cities is an existential fact of life, not a preferred policy. See
Levine, The Strategic Nuclear Debate.
"Holst, "Denial and Punishment: Straddling the Horns of NATO's Dilemma," p. 69.
57
Karaten D. Voigt, "Nuclear Weapons in Europe: A German Social Democrat's Per-
spective," in Pierre, 1984, p. 103.
- .-
- nm ~ mmnmmn~mlmm nnm nm ,kmm nnm m m ~* "|
58
The primary function of nuclear weapons is deterrence in order to
prevent aggression and blackmail.M
But of course the simple military statement covers a host of political
as well as military subtleties.'e Flexible Response was as much a
response to the allies' inability to agree on a precise strategy as it was
to the Soviet threat as such. Voigt points out that:
The contradictions and conflicting interests inherent in the strategy
of flexible response have never been fully discussed. They have been
covered over by a NATO doctrine that views the resulting strategic
ambiguity as an added factor of risk and thus an additional element
of deterrence against the Warsaw Pact. But this is of dubious value
for Alliance politics: it presents the Soviet Union with the opportun-
ity to exploit unresolved conflicts of interest among the Atlantic
allies thereby causing considerable strain in the Alliance.e

The Kaiser-Leber-Mertes-Schulze statement and that of Voigt


exemplify the pattern of European discussions of the conventional-
nuclear link: Explicit agreement is expressed in military terms cen-
tered on the Flexible Response doctrine; the explicit agreement, how-
ever, papers over implicit political disagreements that can frequently be
detected around the edges.
The central example is the question of the threshold at which NATO
might make the choice to turn to nuclear weapons in order to avoid
defeat at the conventional level. In the writings of recent years at
least, it is difficult to find disagreement with the 1983 expression of
French diplomat Frangois de Rose, that: "The key task is to create the
capabilities that can lift from the Alliance, in the event of a crisis, the
incubus of early resort to nuclear weapons in order to avert certain
defeat on the conventional battlefield."
61
NATO Information Director Wilfried Hoffmann, however, expresses
doubts about too high as well as too low a thresholh
If NATO were to have too few conventional forces, the East could
come to the conclusion that the West no longer seriously contem-
plated a military defense because its failure to take steps to avoid an
58F~asr at al., p. 1159.
9One such subtlety apparently lies in international semantics. The ordinary render-
ing in French of "Flexible Response" is "Riposte Gradude." The primary English-
language meaning of gradu~e is, not surprisingly, "graduated," but this is not synonymous
with "flexible." Graduation seems to imply, for example, always starting at a low level of
violence, which is not necessarily implicit in flexibility. None of this seems to be com-
mented on in the literature, however.
eVoigt, 1984, pp. 101-102.
61
Frangois de Rose, "NATO's Perils--and Opportunities," Stgik Review, Fall 1983,
p. 23.
59
early recourse to nuclear weapons could be seen as a reluctance to
undertake any kind of self-defence, by either nuclear or conventional
means. If however, NATO were to build up its conventional forces
beyond a certain limit, the East could conclude that the West was in
fact deterred by its own nuclear weapons, and at least secretly no
longer relied on them.
2
More frequent is an agnostic but conservative position, "Why
Change?" as expressed, for example, by Heisbourg's statement that
"one could conclude that NATO's. present force posture in Europe is
reasonably satisfactory because it provides a relatively cost-effective
mix of nuclear weapons (for deterrence) and conventional forces (des-
tined to lend credibility to the threat of nuclear deterrence and to deal
with limited contingencies)."'
Former French Prime Minister Raymond Barre, while advocating a
high threshold, brings up another key point in European doubts about
the concrete steps needed to raise it-the cost:
West Europeans should aim to raise their overall defence capability
and strengthen their immediate capacity for resistance. This con-
cerns the whole of the Alliance and, in particular, my own country.
It is difficult for a medium-size power such as France, as Britain well
realizes, to do everything: simultaneously to maintain a nuclear
deterrent at the best level possible, to keep conventional defence
forces capable of acting alongside our allies on the European con-
tinent, to secure civil defence, and to maintain the forces needed to
honour commitments outside Europe. And yet, this must be done!"
As Americans have discovered in other contexts, however, exclama-
tion points provide no clear solution to budgetary problems. Kaiser,
Leber, Mertes, and Schulze run into a similar dilemma: "an energetic
attempt to reduce the dependence on an early first use of nuclear
weapons must be undertaken.... In sum, we consider efforts to raise
the nuclear threshold by a strengthening of conventional options to be
urgently necessary,"6
5
but earlier in the same article, "We believe that
the authors [of the No First Use proposal] considerably underestimate
the political and financial difficulties which stand in the way of estab-
lishing a conventional balance by increased armament by the West"16
eWilffied Hoffman, "Is NATO's Defence Policy Facing a Crisis?" NATO Review,
August 1984, p. 7.
esFranoois Heisbourg, "Europe at the Turn of the Millenium: Decline or Rebirth?"
Washington Quarterly, Winter 1987, pp. 48-49.
4
Raymond Barre, "Foundations for European Security and Cooperation," Survival,
July/Augu t 1987, p. 298.
6Kaiser et al., pp. 1169-1170.
e
65
bid., p. 1163.
IY
- i ;
, , : o
+
,.. 2.',' ' " ' *+. . . .
- + I lll mlln l l l l l1.ll *.'II
( _ _ __ _ _ __ _ _
-
_ _ __ _ __ _ _
60
The No First Use proposal marks a conceptual upper bound on the
threshold: Never use nuclear weapons unless the Warsaw Pact uses
them first. As discussed in the section on the Maintainers, few Ameri-
cans take No First Use literally as a current policy proposal. (The ini-
tiating article by the American "Gang of Four" proposes discussion of
the concept, aimed at possible future implementation.) For many West
Europeans, however, it is taken more seriously, as a threat. In addition
to their fears about its effect on the American commitment, the Ger-
man four who answered the Americans expressed a broad West Euro-
pean consensus in regard to the effects of a No First Use doctrine on
the Russians and on the Alliance. Were the doctrine adopted by
NATO:
Even in the case of a large-scale conventional attack upon the entire
European NATO territory, the Soviet Union could be certain that its
own land would remain a sanctuary as long as it did not itself resort
to nuclear weapons.... [Thus] the proposed no-first-use policy
would destroy the confidence of Europeans and especially of Ger-
mans in the European-American Alliance as a community of risk,
and would endanger the strategic unity of the Alliance and the secu-
rity of Western Europe.6
7
Their manifesto opposing No First Use is not a right wing or militarist
document; Leber is an SPD deputy; and Voigt, a sometime SPD
spokesman on defense policy, advocates no more than "a Western
defense strategy capable of renouncing the early use of nuclear
weapons,
"
's thus avoiding endorsement of No First Use in all cases.
This is not to say that the entire SPD would accept Voigt's implicit
residual First Use strategy; but those members who remain in the
Coupler consensus rather than being part of the more radical Remover
school (not only No First Use, but No Nuclear Weapons) do not com-
pletely disown first use.
Indeed, it is difficult to find a current West European endorsement
of No First Use, except by the Removers. Within the Coupler con-
sensus, Hoist has consistently advocated a high nuclear threshold, and
in 1983 he came close to an endorsement of No First Use: "An NFU
pledge [by NATO] could contribute to stability provided both sides
take steps to reduce the vulnerability of their nuclear postures in
Europe and to withdraw weapons that are likely to exert pressures for
671bid., p. 1162.
esKarsten D. Voigt, "Strategic Policy Options and the Implications for Arms Control,
Stability and East-West Relations," in International Institute for Strategic Studies, Adel-
phi Papers 206, London, Spring 1986, p. 39.
'2
61
early and massive use." But by 1986, shortly before he became
Defense Minister of Norway,
70
he qualified it a bit more: "The margi-
nal arms-control benefits of a no-first-use doctrine-as compared to a
doctrine of no early use--must be considered in relation to possible
marginal costs in terms of deterrence and Alliance cohesion."
7 1
And, as
Defense Minister, he has taken a step farther back, although
Norwegian policy is strongly antinuclear. In describing this policy,
which eschews nuclear weapons for Norway or in Norway, he nonethe-
less makes it clear that:
NATO's strategy neither prescribes nor rules out the use of nuclear
weapons. Norway places emphasis on developing a credible conven-
tional defence system which would transfer to her opponent the bur-
den [that] consideration of the possible employment of nuclear
weapons would represent. Such employment is deterred by the
Alliance's capacity to retaliate.
72
The Couplers' approach to the Conventional-Nuclear Link is further
illuminated by their attitude toward INF. The zero-zero negotiations
leading to the removal of INF will be taken up under the Arms Control
heading. The discussions about initial installation, before the zero-zero
proposal was taken seriously, however, throw light on the European
primacy of political thinking over military, particularly the role of INF
in maintaining the U.S. commitment, for this strategic issue as else-
where.
A military justification for INF is very difficult to find in European
writings. University of London Professor Lawrence Freedman comes
closest:
[The] location of the new NATO missiles dispels any Soviet illusion
about containing the consequences of a nuclear strike in Central
and Western Europe and as such performs a valuable function.
There really does seem to be some substance to the idea that the
physical presence of U.S. weapons on European soil not only pro-
Hoist, "Moving Toward No First Use in Practice," 1983, p. 194.
7in several places throughout, this report uses the phrase "officials and analysts" to
describe the participants in the arms debate. Hoist is one of the few individuals describ-
able as an "official and analyst." American Under Secretary of Defense Fred IWl6 is
another, as is his predecessor in office Robert Komer, and House Armed Services CoN-
mittes Chairman Lea Aspin.
7t
Hoist, "Denial and Punishment: Straddling the Horns of NATO's Dilemma," in
International Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Papers 206, p. 69.
* "Holst, "Security and Low Tension in the Northern Regions," lecture at a seminar
arranged by the Advisory Council on Arms Control and Disarmament of the Norwegian
Government, Bodo, 12 June 1986, p. 3.
_ir
! . -
62
vides reassurance to the Europeans but also significantly affects
Soviet calculations."
This argument, however, is not based on the utility of the missiles for
carrying out some military mission better than other weapons; it is
rather that they strengthen U.S. coupling to NATO deterrence. As put
by Freedman: "LRTNF modernization was thus requested by West
Europeans to increase the risk to the United States."
74
And the official German position on INF installation, as presented
by Ruehl, makes clear several national political imperatives in addition
to the demands of coupling:.
The government of the Federal Republic of Germany focused on
three demands regarding TNF [Theater Nuclear Force] moderniza-
tion: 1) the emphasis of the TNF structure may not be placed on
tactical nuclear weapons and tactical options; 2) the modernization
may not effect massive additions to long-range delivery systems; 3)
the Federal Republic of Germany may not occupy a special position
in Europe. The first two demands together produced the third.
However, this third demand, the central demand of TNF policy, as
determined by strategic-operational as well as psychological factors,
surpassed in its breadth the combined effects of the first two: It has
as its goal the distribution of the burden within the Alliance and in
particular among the NATO partners on the European mainland:
The burden of LRTNF deployment should not rest on German soil.
7
'
The Germans still fear becoming the Teutonic knights facing the Slavs,
alone on the eastern marches.
Unlike INF, President Reagan's Strategic Defense Initiative (SDI)
proposal for an American Anti-Ballistic Missile (ABM) system, was on
its face an American rather than a European issue, but for Europeans
it has raised similar threshold questions. West Europeans oppose SDI
in part for economic reasons because they believe that it will give
American research and development a boost that Europe cannot
match. On the strategic side, many European analysts, like many
Americans, have doubts about the feasibility of SDI as much more
than a partial defense against missiles; nonetheless, they must take a
potential strong ABM capability seriously, just in case.
Freedman, for example, is concerned with the effects on the Alliance
of the shift toward American withdrawal that SDI seems to signal:
73
Lawrence D. Freedman, "U.S. Nuclear Weapons in Europe: Symbols, Strategy and
Force Structure," in Pierre (ed.), p. 63.
74
Lawrence D. Freedman, The Price of Peace: Living With the Nuclear Dilemma,
Firstborn Prow, London, 1986, p. 65.
'Lothar Ruehl, Mittelstrmhenwaffen in Europa: Ihre Bedeutung in Strategie, Rus-
Unghontrol und Bundnispolitik, Nomos Verlagugesselachsft, Baden-Baden, 1987, p. 180.
f~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~~~4 XnN mnl
a '
mmIm -", ....
63
Governments, which have spent much of the 1980s trying to reassure
their voters that nuclear deterrence not only worked effectively in
preserving the peace but could endure for many decades, have been
irritated to find the President echoing the claims of the anti-nuclear
movement that nuclear deterrence is immoral and unstable.... To
the West European governments, the President's rhetoric could be
viewed as an indication of a desire to release the United States from
risks attendant on its nuclear commitments. If the "technical" fix of
SDI failed, was not the logical next stop to withdraw from the com-
mitments?
76
This summarizes succinctly the Couplers' political-strategic fears
about SDI. The West European opposition to the ABM system
invokes a tighter consensus than do most threshold issues, uniting
debaters across the range, from such low-threshold writers as Heis-
bourg to such high-threshold advocates as Hoist and Voigt.
One final question in regard to linkage between conventional and
nuclear warfare, although of concern to West Europeans in general, is
primarily French. American nuclear weapons are not the only ones
that might be invoked by combat in Europe; French and British
weapons are also of direct concern. The concern is primarily French
(the British, linked as they are into the NATO military structure, are
less involved in separate strategic calculations), but the effect of
independent deterrence on NATO strategy must also be considered,
because escalation by NATO to nuclear levels will not necessarily be
differentiated nationally by the Soviets.
French doctrine sounds quite similar to the low-threshold version of
NATO-wide Flexible Response. According to General Franjois Valen-
tin:
It would not be correct to think that the French concept proceeds
with a sort of insane willfullness to "climb" to the nuclear level; it is
rather a question of not dissipating the concept of deterrence by let-
ting the aggressor believe that he can obtain his objectives by con-
ducting conventional operations without risk of escalation because
the West would not dare to be the first to explode nuclear weapons.
The French believe that No First Use and, equally, No Early Use,
give premiums for aggression: in the latter case, too late a response,
once the enemy has achieved multiple breakthroughs and his troops
have poured into Western Europe, would cumulate nuclear on top of
conventional destruction."
Some French writers disagree. Ambassador de Rose, for example,
writes that "The whole benefit of [NATO] conventional upgrading
7Freedman, The Price of Peace, p. 252.
7Frangois Valentin, "Cooperation Franco-Allemande dana I Domaine des Forces
Classiques," in Kaiser and Leilouche, p. 156.
Jn
i "-'
. , .. .. ,
64
might be jeopardized if French forces had to resort early to their
nuclear arms,"
78
and he favors No Early Use. One current problem is
that the short range of the French tactical missile, Pluton, means that
it must be integrated into otherwise conventional military units, but
this may be solved in the future when the greater range of the oncom-
ing Hades missile will at least make it possible to regroup nuclear
weapons into their own formations.
79
Nonetheless, the official French version of their own Flexible
Response does not stress the conventional-nuclear distinction. And
this greatly worries the Germans, who fear not only the direct effect on
themselves of independent French control of their tactical nuclear
weapons, but also the effects on the allied armies defending German
soil. As put by German General Schulze, former NATO Central Euro-
pean commander:
[F]or the possible employment of French tactical nuclear weapons to
support a counteroffensive by French units, preservation of the
interests of a state which is "directly concerned" is not an issue that
involves German security interests alone.... American, Belgian,
British, German, and Canadian troops would all be "directly con-
cerned." It is thus not a question of coordination with the Germans
alone, but of coordination with the Central European command.8
The European Couplers do not all think in the same way. But they
all think about the security of NATO Europe, against the military
threat of conventional or nuclear war as well as against the political
threat of Soviet constraints on their liberties, and that distinguishes
them from the American Maintainers.
Conventional Weapons
German fears of being abandoned are exacerbated by the knowledge
that the Federal Republic is a narrow country running north and
south; an even partly successful attack from the east could capture
most of the German population and economy in short order. As a
result, NATO's commitment has always been to the forward defense of
West Germany-the Warsaw Pact cannot be allowed any substantial
penetration-which greatly complicates the already difficult problem of
conventional defense of this long border.
7Franois de Rose, 'Inflexible Response," Foreign Affairs, Fall 1982, p. 14
79Sm, for example, Frangois Heisbourg, "Europe, USA et Option 'Double Zero,'"
interview in Liberation, April 17, 1987, p. 4.
Franz-Jossph Schulze, "La Necesit6 d'une R6action de Ifense Imm6diate et Com-
mune," in Kaiser and Lellouche, p. 165.
j , , -- .
- ,a ms u mmmlm n m nn~ ,sn,,, m ~ n .n = n .~nLu -- . .
65
The debate over the appropriate level of conventional capabilities for
NATO is the oldest in the Alliance. It began with the setting forth of
the Lisbon force goals in 1952, and with the subsequent ignoring of the
goals, and it has changed little since.
The United States wants greater conventional capabilities for
NATO, and has since the beginning. Americans also reach a consensus
on wanting a greater European contribution to these capabilities.
Many Europeans have agreed, at least in principle; but others have
disagreed, some on the principle and some on the burden of such
increases in conventional capabilities. In addition, most Europeans
express doubts about the hopes held by many Americans that new high
technology weapons will help restore the conventional balance, and
about new "deep" strategies based in part on new technology. In this
case, however, many Americans share the doubts as well.
The agreement in principle makes the European-American
(Coupler-Maintainer) differences less clearcut here than on other
issues. This section first takes up the nature of the Coupler side of
this agreement, then the doubts and qualifications with which the
Europeans condition it. The debate on principle is followed by a dis-
cussion of pragmatics: Where do the conventional capabilities of the
Alliance actually stand? Then: What can be done to improve capabili-
ties, technologically and strategically? Virtually all of these segments
of the debate concern the Central Front; the section ends, however,
with the much thinner debate over the conventional defense of
NATO's flanks.
West European agreement to the need for improved conventional
capabilities is not a national matter. Briton Jonathan Alford, until his
death Deputy Director of IISS:
(Tihree factors lead to the conclusion that NATO in general and
NATO Europe in particular must contribute more at the conven-
tional level. The first derives from the change in the Soviet-
American nuclear relationship. If the nuclear component of Western
deterrence is generally acknowledged to have become less credible
and if deterrence in Europe is the sum of nuclear risk and conven-
tional denial, it is necessary to improve NATO's conventional ability
to deny the Warsaw Pact all possible conventional objectives.
4Second, the Warsaw Pact in general and the Soviet Union in particu-
lar have shown no sign of reducing the rate of increase of their
investment in conventional forces, reflected less in quantitative than
in qualitative terms. Third, the United States, by assuming a wider
conventional security burden outside Europe, tends to shift a some-
what pester security load onto European shoulders!'
81Jonathan Alford, "Perspectives on Strategy," in Steinbruner and Sigal, p. 104.
i ""
mmN ( mmmmm ",m.mar J mmmmmmm mmm mm.mm Wm
German General Wolfgang Altenburg, Chairman of the NATO Military
Committee:
Because the use of nuclear weapons could lead to utter destruction,
we need a greater conventional capability in Allied Command Europe
in order to buy time and become less reliant upon nuclear retalia-
tion.
82
Ambassador de Rose, who also suggests specific roles for his nation in
the conventional buildup:
A buildup of NATO's conventional forces would therefore be a dou-
ble action move: it would remedy one of our weaknesses and increase
one of the Soviet Union's.
For if the Alliance, or rather the integrated forces under SACEUR
[Supreme Allied Commander, Europe], are to upgrade their strength,
it would be of considerable importance, if French forces are to play
their role of general reserve, that they be able to hold on in conven-
tional operations as long as those fighting alongside them....
Equally important would be the role that France would have to
assume in the logistic field. If the Western conventional posture is
to provide for a greater capacity to stem a Warsaw Pact offensive,
full use of French territory, facilities, lines of communication, etc.,
would be required."
Even in principle, however, Europeans are far from unanimity on a
conventional buildup. Ambassador de Rose (who is retired from the
active French diplomatic corps) may favor the buildup, but French
Prime Minister Chirac puts conventional forces in an explictly second-
ary position:
To guarantee nuclear deterrence, the keystone to our system of secu-
rity, is the first mission of our defense.... But nuclear deterrence is
not everything. For many responses, France must use conventional
forces-when tensions or even conflicts menace our interests or those
of our friends."
And, going beyond principle to pragmatics, Dutch analyst Jan-Geert
Siccama suggests that technological progress means that the number of
civilian casualties in any future conventional war in Europe would
dwarf the 23 million of World War I. He lists as reasons the urban-
ization and suburbanization of Western Europe; the proliferation of
ftolfgang Altenburg, "Adapting Security Partnerships to Contemporary Require-
monts," in Man g* Entry into the 21st Centry, Atlantic Institute for International
Affairs, Paris, 1986, p. 20.
"~de Rose, "Inflexible Response," pp. 142-148.
"Chirac, "Discours devant l'Assembl6e National-DMveloppements touchant Is
Dofonse," in Ministr des Affaires ttrangires, 1986, p. 29.
i RB BRBB ~ msi n O ~ i4
67
poison-producing chemical factories and depositories; and the central-
ization of the supplies of electricity, water, and other public services.85
Some European advocates of greater dependence on conventional
defense assert that the conventional balance is not really as bad as is
frequently pictured. The contention that NATO is almost able to
defend against Warsaw Pact aggression has a long history, almost as
long as the Lisbon-and-thereafter fear that the Alliance was nowhere
near able. An entry on the optimistic side comes from the defense
correspondent of the Economist, James Meacham. In the conclusion of
a long analysis written under the headline, "Can the line be held? Yes,
but," Meacham writes:
There is little doubt that the central front could be held against the
first echelon of a conventional attack by the Warsaw Pact powers.
But then the question marks begin to appear. Would the French
lend their weight in time? Would the congestion caused by West
German mobilization and the massive American and British rein-
forcements become unmanageable? Would the allied air force be able
to give direct support to the ground battle or would it break its back
pressing home attacks deep into Eastern Europe? Would the air
defenses stand up to the pounding they would be sure to receive?...
NATO's armies and air forces would have some chance of defeating a
sudden surprise attack completely and could almost certainly last for
more than a few days against an attack by partially mobilized
forces... [and] it is a fair guess that if NATO's conventional forces
could hold out for two weeks they could hold out forever.'
The more conventional view on NATO's conventional capabilities,
however, is that expressed by Alford, Altenburg, and de Rose at the
beginning of this section-more effort is needed. And almost as con-
ventional, at least in Europe, is the belief that it will be awfully diffi-
cult to get there from here. Heisbourg lists as major problems
budgetary constraints, demographic factors leading to sharp reductions
in the numbers of men of military age, and political differences among
the European allies.
8 7
The budgetary doubts about substantially
increased expenditures for conventional capabilities are precisely as old
as the Lisbon demands for such capabilities; this is the classical NATO
issue. The political constraints change over time, but in one form or
another they antedate the Alliance. The demographic issue is fairly
new.
5
6Jan-Geert Siccama, "Rejoinder," in Netherlands Institute of International Rela-
tions, pp. 32-83.
*'NNATO's Central Front," The Economist, August 30-September 5, 1986, p. 22.
87Heisbourg, "Conventional Defense: Europe's Constraints and Opportunitie," in
Pierre 1986, pp. 72-78.
J
,.! . . - .
68
Given these constraints, NATO has long looked for a way in which
to strengthen its conventional defense substantially without many (or
perhaps any) increases in costs. Starting in the 1960s, the search has
led to considerable interest in new military technologies based pri-
marily on new guidance systems. In the earlier years the systems of
greatest interest were those that it was hoped would allow an infantry-
man to destroy a tank with so high a probability that the Warsaw
Pact's offensive armored capability could be defeated from NATO's
defensive foxholes. By the 1980s, however, the "Emerging Technolo-
gies" (ETs) stressed longe-range guidance systems precise enough to
allow missiles to destroy deep enemy targets with conventional rather
than nuclear munitions. This has led in turn to consideration of new
NATO strategies based on conventional-weapons interdiction of Pact
lines of communication and follow-on reserve echelons. One of these,
"Follow-On Forces Attack" (FOFA) comes from Supreme Headquar-
ters, Allied Powers, Europe (SHAPE); another version is embodied in
the U.S. Army's "AirLand Battle."' In addition, a proposal for defend-
ing the West by mounting a counteroffensive toward the east, put forth
by Harvard Professor Samuel Huntington,
9
has been widely discussed.
These technological and strategic concepts are primarily American
and will be discussed in the section on the American Maintainers.
Most West Europeans are highly skeptical, and the European support
that does exist is tentative and qualified. For example, although Heis-
bourg is optimistic on the technological possibilities for major improve-
ments in the accuracy of individual weapons and in electronic battle-
field control, he suggests that the Soviets are capable of keeping up
technically well enough to maintain the current balance. In addition
he cautions that in "practice it usually is unsafe to build vast doctrinal
edifices as long as the relevant technology has not been, to some extent
at least, proved in the field," which he sees as a standard American
tendency.
9
The comment itself represents a standard West European
criticism.
reWbat the difference is between FOFA and AirLand Battle is in itself the subject of
some controversy, which, fortunately, is not highly relevant to the overall NATO debate.
This report draws such distinctions as necessary from Boyd Sutton, John R. Landry,
Malcolm B. Armstrong, Howell M. Estes, and Wesley K. Clark, "Strategic snd Doctrinal
Implications of Deep Attack Concepts for the Defense of Western Europe," in Keith A.
Dunn and William 0. Staudenmaier (eds.), Military Strategy in Transition, U.S. Army
War College, Carlisle Barracks, Pa., 1983, pp. 65-76.
ssSee, for example, his chapter on "The Renewal of Strategy" in Samuel P. Hunting-
ton (ed.), The Strategic Imperative: New Policies lor American Security, Ballinger, Cam-
bridge, 1982. This is discussed below in the analysis of the American Maintainer school.
9Heisbourg, "Conventional Defense: Europe's Constraints and Opportunities,' p. 94.
SV,
69
Beyond the feasibility of the new technologies, many Europeans
voice substantial political doubts about the deep strategies. Krell
expresses the fears of those Germans who are concerned about defend-
ing West German territory without appearing to renew historical Ger-
man aggression toward the east, as well as about arms control. On
Huntington's counteroffensive proposal, he comments:
Samuel Huntington has asked the question, why NATO should
observe operational restraint, when the Soviet Union threatened the
West with a large-scale ground offensive. NATO should react in a
similar way.... [But this would have] disastrous consequences for
military and political stability.... A NATO strategy which
threatens to put Soviet control over Eastern Europe at risk militarily "
would not only be the end of detente, but of the NATO alliance. It
would run counter to the logic and the course of development in
West German security policy and Ostpolitik since the early 50s, what-
ever its purely military rationale (asymmetry of options, e.g.) may be.
In the German debate, respect for recent European history and
Germany's terrible contributions to it are inseparable from such cal-
culations
91
He provides similar criticisms of FOFA and AirLand Battle, suggesting
that they are both provocative and easy for the Soviets to counter and
thus would increase tensions in central Europe without increasing
Western security.
It is not only nonofficial analysts in Germany who worry about
these issues. The 1984 Defense White Paper, submitted by Defense
Minister Manfred Woerner, a government and CDU mainstay who has
since become Secretary-General of NATO, says:
The maxim of limited goals for NATO's strategy radically excludes
the option of offensive defense. Neither preemptive war nor offen-
sive or preventive operations, which lead into enemy territory in
order to gain space for one's own defense, are politically acceptable or
militarily feasible concepts for NATO.... National tactical-
operational guidelines such as the U.S. AirLand Battle doctrine as
laid down in the Field Manual 100-5 are valid in Europe only to the
extent to which they are compatible with the principles of defense in
NATO.
92
On the opposite side from the various proposed "offensive" solutions
to the conventional imbalance are several suggestions for a "defensive
91
Gert Krell, INF, SDI, and Conventionalization: West German Approaches to Defense
and Dtente, paper for the PRIF-University of California, Santa Barbara Conference on
'Arms Control in U.S.-West German Relations," Bad Homburg, December 1-3, 1986,
p. 25.
"Ministry of Defense of the Federal Republic of Germany, Weibuch, 1s5, p. 30,
quoted in English translation ibid., p. 29.
ll~m MMMMI MII I :m
( -(
70
defense," designed to strip away all offensive capabilities and instead
strengthen the capability to repel the enemy by holding in place in a
fairly static area defense. These have originated primarily with Euro-
pean Removers. Briton David Gates of the University of Aberdeen
provides a series of Coupler criticisms of the concept: It precludes tac-
tical counteroffensive as part of the defense, it is too easy for an enemy
to figure out and counter, it is too dependent upon high technology as
well as massive manpower and materiel. But then he suggests that it
may have a place (e.g., in "enclosed and forested areas"), although
nowhere near as important a one as its advocates believe.
93
Neither "offensive" nor "defensive" defenses find many adherents
among Couplers. German analyst Joseph Joffe sums up the ordinary
skeptical response to this entire range of proposals for radical change
of NATO doctrine:
In the end the three conventional complements/alternatives to for-
ward defense-no-first-use, forwardism and rearwardism-fall down
where the logic of politics meets the logic of strategy. There is a rea-
son why the messy and uncertain tenets of "flexible response up
front" have survived so many powerful challenges. With all its shaky
compromises between manpower needs and manpower yields,
between the conventional and the nuclear, flexible response is the
thin red line separating two logical alternatives that are even more
unattractive.
94
All of the discussion of conventional weapons thus far presented has
concerned the Central front, the West German border with East Ger-
many and Czechoslovakia. In fact, the Germans on the Central front
and the French right behind them do concentrate almost entirely on
that area, to the exclusion of NATO's flanks-Norway, Turkey and
Greece. Yet the flanks, both by NATO's will and by the will of the
flank nations themselves, are to be defended conventionally, with no
reason to believe that that defense will be easier than on the Central
front.
Stratmann, in spite of the title of his paper on "NATO Doctrine and
National Operational Priorities: The Central Front and the Flanks:
Part II," devotes slightly less than one page out of 20 to the flanks.
(Part I by an American does emphasize the outlying regions.) In it, he
makes clear the prevailing central European view of the secondary
nature of the flanks:
93
David Gates, "Area Defense Concepts," Survival, July/August 1987, pp. 309-315.
94
Joseph Joffe, "Stability and Its Discontent: Should NATO Go Conventional,"
Washington Quarterly, Fall 1984, p. 145.
" "- ~,.,. 11 {
m - lmmm mmm mm (mmm~m m~m mm m mmh mw m ,- m m.33
71
Initial operations on the Northern Flank would primarily be directed
at protecting the strategic assets of the Northern Fleet and securing
and winning its passage through the G-I-UK [Greenland-Iceland-
United Kingdom] Gap into the Atlantic. In the course of this cam-
paign, Soviet forces would certainly attempt to neutralize and, if pos-
sible occupy NATO airbases and other assets in Northern
Norway.... As for NATO's Southern Flank, major Soviet offensive
operations are not to be expected during the initial phase of the
war....
In the view of Soviet planners, the overall strategic success will prob-
ably be determined by the rapid advance of the landfront in the
[Central] area. The key objective is to penetrate NATO's forward
defense and reach the Rhine and the North Sea ports within a few
days.
95
The Southern flank presents substantial problems for NATO-
Greek and Spanish pressure to remove American bases, Greek-Turkish
tensions, and the role of Turkey in an all-out Soviet attack in Europe
being chief among them-but these seldom enter the public debate,
least of all in northern Europe. In 1988, when Spain forced the United
States to withdraw its fighter aircraft from the Torrejon air base, the
major concern expressed by Europeans to the north of the Pyrenees
was the policy precedent they feared was being set for NATO's Central
front.
The same tendency to set the issue aside might be true for the
Northern flank were it not for the fact that Norwegian Defense Minis-
ter Hoist is a member in excellent standing of the North Atlantic com-
munity of strategists, and a prolific writer. His assessment of the
importance of Norway to the rest of NATO, primarily in its location
astride Soviet routes to the Atlantic, is not dissimilar from
Stratmann's; but Norway is not secondary to Norwegians, and Hoist
goes beyond Stratmann to complete the circle on his nation's role:
If Norway should fall into hostile hands the ability of the Western
alliance to maintain the integrity of the sea lanes of
communication--or the "sea bridge"-linking North America to
Western Europe would be seriously impaired. If the Western alliance
should prove unable to secure the trans-atlantic sea lines of commun-
ication, NATO's ability to hold the central front in Europe would be
seriously impaired. If NATO's ability to hold the central front
should be seriously questioned, the Western powers would find their
negotiating position vis-i-vis the Soviet Union seriously impaired.
Similarly, if NATO should not appear capable of controlling the pro-
cess of escalation on the central front in the event of war, the credi-
bility of the commitment to reinforce Norway would be seriously
"Peter Stratmann, "NATO Dottne and National Operational Prioritie: the Cen-
tral Front and the Flanks: Part II," p. 37.
%.
II I
m m
i1
72
impaired. Without credible reinforcement from her allies Norway's
ability to defend herself against aggression would be seriously
impaired. Hence Norway's participation in NATO is based on
shared and reciprocal interests reflecting a basic condition of inter-
dependence."
To pursue these ends, Norway and the Alliance have designed a rather
intricate strategy. Hoist's description of Norway's strong policy
against basing or hosting nuclear weapons, which nonetheless "neither
prescribes nor rules out the use of" such weapons, has been discussed
above. Other restrictions are also imposed on NATO activities, but an
extensive program of joint exercises is carried out with the nation's
allies, including Canada, which shares with Norway the military prob-
lems imposed by a harsh northern climate.
Hoist points out elsewhere that "Norway, Denmark and Iceland are
allied with the Western powers in a much more encompassing and
committed manner than Finland is tied to the Soviet Union."' In a
sense, nonnuclear Norway may provide an illustration of what NATO
Europe would be if all nuclear weapons were withdrawn from Europe
but the Alliance and the ultimate American strategic nuclear guarantee
remained. The picture is far more encouraging than that implied by
the term "Finlandization," but the problem is that no one can guaran-
tee that the result of such a nuclear withdrawal would be Norwegian-
ization rather than the more constrained state in which the Soviets
force Finland to exist.
THE OPPONENT
The Soviet Union
This discussion of the Couplers' views of the Soviets begins by
repeating the statement by Nicole Gnessoto, the French analyst quoted
in the Introduction to this report: "In the bundle of factors which
have, since 1954, determined the evolution of the Franco-German
j dialogue on matters of security, the Soviet Union has appeared,
without doubt, as the only constant."
The sentence was published in 1986; as soon as a year later, the con-
stancy was in doubt as the world wondered whether Chairman
Gorbachev's high-wire act was as real and radical as it seemed, or
"eJohan Joigen Hoist, "NATO and Northern Security," addres at the opening ssion
of the Oslo International Symposium "Perspectives on NATO and the Northern Flank,"
Akershus Castle, August 10, 1986, p. 3.
t
Johan Jorgen Hoist, "Nordic Security Perspective.," address to Oxford University
Strategic Studies Group, All Souls College, March 10, 1987, p. 3.
J.
73
whether it was done with mirrors and smoke concealing the same old
hostile and plodding Soviet Union, and whether, if real, it could last.
If the seeming changes in Soviet external policy are mostly real, if they
are really radical, and if they last, they will affect all aspects of the
NATO debate, not only the direct analysis of the Soviets themselves.
In particular, they are likely to change the focus of the debate from our
perceptions of ourselves to our perceptions of the opponent.
Some Europeans who near the far right end of the political spectrum
describe the Soviet Union in terms akin to Ronald Reagan's "Evil
Empire." Jean-Frangois Revel, for example, in a book much admired by
the American right, states flatly thal. "It is natural for communism to
try with all its might to eliminate democracy, since the two systems are
incompatible and communism's survival depends on its rival's annihila-
tion"9s
Most Couplers see the Soviet Union as hostile and opportunistic,
but prudent; the debate is over the particular mixture of these factors
and how the Russians translate taem into doctrine and operating prac-
tice. No matter what the Soviets do in the next several years, the
Couplers will continue to observe the mixture and argue over the par-
ticulars; the arguments set forth here will not disappear, nor will they
change much, although their relative weights may.
One point of consensus is as unanimous as a political or military
belief can get. No European official or analyst in the last 20 years, nor
any American for that matter-the American debate over perceptions
of the Russians runs mostly parallel to the European-has believed
that the Soviets were planning a military attack on the West in any
immediate or near-term period. But this is far from a statement that
military power is irrelevant. Almost as unanimously, European
Couplers and American Maintainers have believed that the primary
reason for the comfortable premise about the Russians is that they
have been deterred by NATO power. Given this constraint, then, the
Couplers believe that the Soviet intention is to use military power to
exert political pressure without ever having to go to war.
Hannes Adomeit, a Sovietologist at the Stifftung fur Wissenschaft
und Politik explains the underlying basis for Soviet military-political
policy:
Perhaps the most important concept for the theory and practice of
Soviet foreign policy is that of the "correlation of forces."... Lenin
constantly pointed to the necessity of taking into account "all the
forces, groups, parties, classes and masses operating in a given coun-
try."... All this is not merely of historical interest. It is to suggest
9BJean-Frangois Revel, How Democracies Perish, Doubleday, Garden City, 1983, p. 7.
4Aj,
74
that trust in the effectiveness of combined external military and
domestic political pressure to achieve Soviet objectives has character-
ized Soviet foreign policy in Eastern and Western Europe without
interruption ever since Stalin.... Soviet conventional superiority in
Europe and the offensive strategy connected with it have remained
one of the most important military and political facts of life in
Europe. Their utility as a political instrument with which to influ-
ence American and Western European perceptions and policies has
never really diminished."
Potential Soviet exploitation of the "correlation of forces" covers a
broad range of possibilities and engenders an equally broad range of
Coupler views. Lellouche details the worst of West European fears
based on this Soviet doctrine, arguing that the Soviets use military
power "to extract political advantages, little by little"; "the USSR must
control Western Europe"; this in turn will determine "the victor in the
historic struggle between socialism and capitalism"; strategic parity has
helped them to "put in train a new phase of external expansion"; and
European conventional arms control negotiations in Stockholm have
assisted "the establishment of an overall 'pan-European' system of col-
lective security controlled by Moscow." His summary is that:
their European strategy is traditionally arranged around three
axes: ... to cut the nuclear umbilical cord connecting Europe to the
United States ... to progressively transform this nuclear "disconnec-
tion" to a political decoupling ... to create sources of diversion for
the United States (around the periphery of that nation-in Latin
America and the Pacific)."

On the other end of the Coupler spectrum, West German Foreign


Minister Hans-Dietrich Genscher, in 1982, well before Gorbachev, saw
a change, not, to be sure, in Soviet objectives, but a change in tactics
and constraints profound enough to engender an important change for
the West. He discussed:
a fundamental change in communist doctrine, a first breakthrough in
a Manichaean concept that normally regards non-Communists as
nothing but class enemies. Leonid Brezhnev developed the principle
of avoidability of nuclear war into a strategy of "peaceful coex-
istence." This does not mean that the Soviet Union has foresworn
its goal of a world revolution. Rather, a policy of peaceful coex-
istence serves to promote Soviet predominance (effectively domina-
tion) in such a way that a major war between East and West is
avoided and economic cooperation with the West is made possible.
s"Hannes Adomeit, "The Political Rationale of Soviet Military Capabilities and Doc-
trine," in Strengthening Conventional Deterrence in Europe: Proposals for the 1980s: the
European Study Report of the Special Panel, Westview Press, Boulder, 1985, pp. 72-79.
'OOLellouche, pp. 96-105.
Tk
~75
Hence a Soviet leadership that can expand its arms arsenal without
encountering any corresponding efforts on the Western side.... will
do so in keeping with the role it has ascribed itself... But how
would a Soviet leadership behave which, in pursuing such a policy,
was faced with an adequate response by the West, involving a
correspondingly high risk? ...
The concept of a dual strategy provides the most effective response
to the challenge posed by the Soviet strategy of "peaceful coex-
istence": one part of this strategy, a policy of equilibrium, is
designed to bring home to the Soviet leadership that it is futile to
pursue a policy of predominance. The d6tente part of the strategy at
the same time affords the Soviet Union an alternative.
10 1
Genscher went on, later in his article, to take up an economic issue
of the early 1980s that was germane to NATO if for no other reason
than that it upset some Americans, including several in the Reagan
administration. The issue was West European assistance to a pipeline
bringing Soviet natural gas to Western Europe, which a number of
Americans thought gave the Soviets a strategic hold over Western
Europe, financed by credits from the West Europeans themselves.
Genscher contended that the net effect might actually decrease Ger-
man primary energy imports from the Soviet Union.
12
The particular pipeline furor has died, but the question of economic
cooperation with the Soviet Union remains. More recently, Willy de
Clerq, External Relations Commissioner of the European Economic
Community, the Common Market, saidk
Improved trade could also, in a more general way, improve the cli-
mate of relations between Eastern and Western Europe. I sometimes
feel that some Americans look at Eastern Europe from such a dis-
tance that they are only able to distinguish black and white. Here, at
close quarters, we can see the various shades of gray.
1
'
Lellouche's opposing comment on economic d6tente is that it will
lead to "an unprecedented expansion in transfers of technology and
capital from the West to the East, with no return whatever in either
the foreign policy of the USSR or the internal development of the
regimes of Eastern Europe."
14
What difference will Gorbachev make? At the outset of his regime,
Lellouche had substantial doubts:
4 '
0 1
Hans-Dietrich Genscher, "Toward an Overall Western Strategy for Peace, Freedom
and Progress," Foreign Affairs, Fall 1982, p. 47.
102
Ibid., p. 56.
' ! Wily de Clerq, quoted in "Western European Considers Formal Trade Ties With
Soviet Bloc," Washington Post, August 5, 1987, p. 16.
1

4
Lellouche, p. 107.
N.
-3t
4 ( ! . . . . .
76
Intuitively, I think that these new men, while they certainly will be
younger, will not necessarily be "newer," in the measure that they
have been molded by the same bureaucratic/ideological machinery.
The powerful inertia of the system (that of the Party) to act to curb,
even to block, any attempts at innovation, should not be underes-
timated. From all evidence, the succession crisis which has occupied
the Kremlin since Brezhnev is far from over.
1
05
Experience since this passage was published in 1985 would neces-
sarily moderate it somewhat; the evidence indicates that the Party has
"curbed" at least some of Gorbachev's attempts at innovation, but it
has "blocked" very few. Nonetheless, many West Europeans as well as
Americans retain their suspicions of the directions and actions of the
Soviet Union. One reason is suggested by Helmut Schmidt, in his book
published about the same time as Lellouche's:
[Tihe key point I want to stress is the deep historical roots, and
resulting steadiness, of the Grand Strategy of Soviet Russia itself. It
is worthwhile to look at historical maps to see how small the Grand
Principality of Moscow was some five hundred years ago.... And
look at the map of today. Russia has grown and grown and
grown.... For over five hundred years, all the Tsars pursued a pol-
icy known as "Gathering of the Russian Lands," which, practically
speaking, meant conquering other people's land and afterward rus-
siying the inhabitants. This Grand Strategy of cautious but con-
tinuous expansion has been continued and carried forward by the
Soviet leadership of Russia.1
3 6
Traditional Russian history looms large among West European
analysts. Even so strong an anti-Communist ideologue as Lellouche
starts his chapter on Soviet expansionism with a quote from the Tsar's
Prime Minister of 1905.107 Although Americans come out at about the
same place, they tend to stress the Communist roots of Soviet behavior
rather than the Russian roots. In any case, however, a 500 year per-
spective like Schmidt's, which makes Peter the Great and Lenin into
blips on a long-run trend, is likely to reinforce doubts about a Gor-
bachev turn in the trend.
Nonetheless, Gorbachev has made a difference in Coupler thinking
about the Soviets. One of the most upbeat statements is by Lord Car-
rington, retiring Secretary General of NATO:
Whatever may be said about Mr. Gorbachev's public relations, his
remarkable capacity for dealing with the press and his -ew style, it is
equally evident that he is, in substance, seeking a different path, a
1
Lellouche, p. 109.
16Helmut Schmidt, A Grand Strategy for the West, pp. 24-25.
107Lellouche, p. 93.
II i,, m~ mmmm m
i I
77
more modern path for the Soviet Union. This is not of course a
non-Marxist path, but a new route to Marxism through greater effi-
ciency and the better use of resources. To achieve that, he will wish
to spend less on defence and to transfer resources to the civilian sec-
tor.... We witnessed some remarkable developments at Reykjavik.
Remarkable, because only a few weeks before it would have been
unthinkable for concessions of the kind proposed by the Soviet
Union to have been made."o
In a later piece, in which he worried about the effect of the then-
imminent zero-zero agreement on the Alliance he had shepherded so
long, he qualified his earlier enthusiasm: "But there is also room for
skepticism about Mikhail S. Gorbachev's foreign-policy goals."
1
'9
Earlier in 1987, former French Prime Minister Barre also exhibited
substantial skepticism:
Mr. Gorbachev has broken sharply with his predecessors on several
major issues: a younger generation of political leaders, better social
discipline, the drive for improved economic efficiency, the many steps
taken to reduce intolerance and promote greater freedom of speech,
and the start made in the release of political prisoners. We must
welcome these changes and not belittle them, while suspending judg-
ment as to whether they will ultimately turn out to be marginal or
fundamental....
It should also be borne in mind that in the field of foreign policy, Mr.
Gorbachev has essentially taken up where his predecessors left
off.... New disarmament plans are being advanced in rapid succes-
sion, but in fact seem to be inspired by the traditional Soviet objec-
tives going back to the 1950s. And above all, Soviet military
capacity..,
continues to grow."
0
The Couplers' perception is that the Soviet Union is changing. The
degree and the speed of the change are highly uncertain, and until
these are clearer, the change cannot be fully factored into the debate.
What may hasten its inclusion, although perhaps on a temporary basis
only, is that although the perception of Gorbachev is moving one way,
the perception of Reagan is moving the other. As put by Dominique
Moisi of IFRI:
In the East-West confrontation, images are as important a part of
reality as the objective factors such as the arms race. On this count
the Soviet Union lately has fared better than the United States.
Here in France the combination of Reykjavik and the Iran arms
18Lord Carrington, "Requirements for Stable Security Relationships," in Atlantic
Institute for International Affairs, 1986, pp. 34-35.
10Lord Carrington, "Picturing Soviets .". Sirens Over European Landscape," Los
Aneles Times, September 27, 1987, Part V, p. 1.
"
0
Barre, p. 293.
4
-,
78
scandal has helped revive an old negative image of the United States.
At the same time, the Soviet Union is enjoying a new and more posi-
tive image under the impulse of an energetic and dynamic leader who
is beating Ronald Reagan at his own game of public relations.
11
'
This gradual relative movement of Reagan and Gorbachev is the
mild Coupler version of the belief of some European Removers in the
"moral equivalence" of the United States and the Soviet Union. In any
case, the comparison may be temporary because unlike Gorbachev's,
Reagan's tenure is distinctly limited, and a new American president
may not only compete with Gorbachev in dynamism but may overcome
some of the negative images of the United States and its presidency
that have bedevilled Alliance relations throughout the 1980s and
before.
Perhaps the best European summary on the new Soviet opponent is
the agnostic one provided by Bertram:
Gorbachev is the first Soviet leader to talk of "common security"
(unlike Stalin), to abstain from saber-rattling and dramatic Third
World adventure (unlike Khrushchev) and to emphasize the Soviet
need for international stability as a function of his desire to promote
domestic reform at home (unlike Brezhnev). Indeed if the state-
ments made by the general secretary were to come to reflect a com-
mitted, sustained policy, this would be the kind of attitude that the
West has always sought....
The problem is that even if these expressions of intent are genuine,
Soviet power will be of a profoundly ambiguous nature for a very
long time to come.1
12
It is the potential change in the Soviet Union, real as well as per-
ceived, that may change the Alliance and the NATO debate even more
rapidly than any perceived change in the United States.
Eastern Europe
The Couplers' discussion of Eastern Europe provides one of the
clearest illustrations of the NATO debate as depending as much on dif-
ferent emphases as on different views. In this it resembles many of the
differences between the Couplers and the American Maintainers.
There are, in fact, few differences among Coupler views in regard to
the bloc of Soviet satellites. Nobody believes either that they can be
"liberated" or that they are any longer simple microcosms of Soviet
"'Dominique Moisi, "U.S. and Soviet Images Shift in France," Los Angeles Times,
February 4, 1987, Part II, p. 5.
"
2
Christoph Bertram, uEurope's Security Dilemmas," Foreign Affairs, Summer 1987,
pp. 944-945.
m m l i u #i Ha I r l mm- -
79
Russia, unable to vary because of fear of the Red Army. The con-
sensus picture is somewhere in between: NATO policy can affect the
nations of the Warsaw Pact and within strict limits can help increase
their autonomy and their internal ease. But few in most of the Euro-
pean NATO nations care enough to write about it; indeed, the multi-
ethnicity of the United States leads more Americans than West Euro-
peans to concentrate on Eastern Europe.
Except for Germans. The German Democratic Republic (GDR) is in
many ways the second most important member of the Soviet Bloc;
although it is exceeded in population by Poland, it has a far stronger
economy, an apparently more loyal tie to the USSR, and it lies along
most of the East-West border. It also shares a language, a culture, and
a history, as well as the border, with the Federal Republic of Germany.
West Germans are acutely aware of the very different situation of their
relatives across that border; indeed, the goal of reunification is written
.into the constitution of the Federal Republic.
The West Germans of today are also comfortable realists who recog-
nize the limits of cross-border brotherhood and the risks of too much
of it. Reunification as such sometimes comes up on special
occasions-in May 1987, for example, pique at the pressure being put
on the Germans to agree to zero-zero led a CDU Bundestag deputy to
call for negotiations on the issue with the Soviets-but the occasions
are rare and what little sound and fury there is quickly disappears.
Rather than political reunification, the operational goals of most West
German officials and analysts tend toward liberalization of the East,
economic cooperation, and relaxation of border-crossing restrictions.
Krell describes the breadth as well as the substance of agreement
within the Federal Republic to subordinate or ignore reunification:
[Flor a long time the idea of reunification was the framework in
which the other issues were defined. ... Gradually the primacy of
reunification has lost its force. Hope for restoration of the territories
east of the Oder-Neisse [now in Poland] has waned almost com-
pletely, as has the support for legitimacy of that hope. As for reunifi-
cation with East Germany, no political group sees it as a near-term
prospect. There is a broad consensus that living with and improving
the status quo between East and West is the order of the day. And it
is now also widely accepted that any chance for improving the politi-
cal and economic situation of the Germans in the GDR requires the
active support of that status quo. Working for more freedom for the
East Germans (and East Europeans) on the basis of a definite terri-
torial status quo has gained priority even over the long-term pros-
pects of reunification. Even the non-desirability of reunification can
now be discussed. The Germans are rediscovering that throughout
most of their history the German nation has lived in separate states,
-lie
80
and that this may have advantages, not only for the international
order, but for the Germans themselves.
113
True, the basic consensus receives different expression from dif-
ferent portions of the German political spectrum. On the right,
Walther Kiep, a leader of the CDU, starts off with a manifesto, but
moves quickly to realism:
The German question is unresolved. It will remain on history's list
of unfinished business until all Germans have had a chance to freely
exercise their right of self-determination. Until then, we in the
Federal Republic will maintain our unswerving view that the German
question must be resolved by achieving unity through peaceful
means. Keeping the question open, Germany's legal status must not
in any way be placed in question or otherwise rationalized away....
For West Germans, however, the yardstick of the quality of relations
with the G.D.R. continues to be the measure of the freedom of move-
ment that can be attained for the people in both parts of Ger-
many.... It will only be possible to reduce... tensions by bringing
about a steady improvement within divided Germany. This is the
specific contribution the two states in Germany must make in sup-
port of the d6tente and peace process in Europe as a whole."
4
Professor Richard Lowenthal takes more account of the internal
motivations of the GDR, suggesting that their political mood is growing
more similar to that of the Federal Republic, accepting the division of
Germany, and with at least the leadership valuing superpower protec-
tion of their status. He sees, on both sides of the border: "a common
acceptance of both the achievements and the recognized horrors of a
common past and.., a growing pride in a common contribution to
d~tente and peace-expressed in the phrase, used equally on both sides
of the border, that 'no war must ever arise again from German soil.
'
"115
That "no war must ever arise again from German soil" is not only a
German slogan. It still rises to the surface on occasion when other
NATO nations consider German reunification. In 1984, for example,
Italian Foreign Minister Giulio Andreotti, in the midst of a fight over
the use of the German language in the Northern Italian provinces
bordering Austria, contended sharply that "There are two German
states now, and there should be two in the future."I's
"
3
Krell, Osoiitih Dimensions of West German Security Poicy, Peace Research Insti-
tute, Frankfurt, December 1986, pp. 32-33 (mimeo).
'
4
Walther Leisler Kiep, "The Now Deutachlandpolitik," Foreign Affairs, Winter
1984/85, pp. 317-318.
11
1chsrd Lowenthal, "The German Question Transformed," Foreign Affair, Winter
194/85, p. 303.
'Nuoted in Michael H. Haltzell, 'Germany Has Its Own Priorities," Los Angela
Time, Auput 31, 1986, Part V, p. 2.
3. Ii
4
81
One of the few non-German European Couplers to write on these
issues is Pierre Hassner, a French analyst of East European origins,
who cautions about the limitations of the possible within the satellite
nations.
The formulation of Franois Duchine at the beginning of the 1970s:
'The Soviets cannot leave Eastern Europe because of the political
control function of their troops, and while they are in Eastern
Europe, Western Europeans need the American presence to balance
them," still remains the best summary of the situation....
Seen from Europe, probably the most favorable situation would be
that in which, within each of the two alliances, the European states
exercise, in parallel or in concert, an influence on their respective
leaders and, by maintaining contacts at the appropriate level, prepare
the outlines for dialog at the summit.... But this model, the most
realistic, is also the most limited. It does not take account of ten-
sions and conflicts between societies and states, between small and
medium states and superpowers, or of the profoundly asymmetric
responses to these challenges from the two systems.'
17
Hassner's realism summarizes a West European consensus on an
issue that few officials or analysts brood about outside of Germany.
ARMS CONTROL AND DISARMAMENT
The incremental policy edge of all these discussions is the gradual
change of weapons systems, strategies, budgets, and arrangements
within the Alliance. Potentially much less incremental is the chance of
substantive and substantial arms control agreements affecting weapons
and postures in Europe. This section primarily examines the debate
over the zero-zero agreement as it suddenly became real in 1987. That
agreement led to far more serious consideration than before of poten-
tial subsequent European arms control measures, both conventional
and nuclear.
When Gorbachev picked up the dormant NATO zero-zero proposal,
and when U.S. Secretary of State Shultz negotiated it to near reality in
Moscow and then brought it back to NATO in Brussels, the reactions
of most European Couplers were between qualified and negative. To
be sure, one reason was the process by which it had come about, begin-
ning with American unilateral and apparently not-thought-through
negotiations at Reykjavik, and continuing with the failure to consult
meaningfully until Shultz returned with a putative agreement. But
Coupler doubts centered also on the substantive effects of the
'
1 7
Hlir, "L'Europe Entre in Ltats-Unis et r1Union S vietique," pp. 6-9.
_ _ __-
j . t* "
82
agreement on nuclear deterrence in Europe; and both the process and
the substance led to the fear that this would be merely the first step
toward full denuclearization and withdrawal of the American guaran-
tee.
The doubters included almost all French analysts and many German
Couplers. In March 1987, when the negotiations were beginning to be
understood as being quite serious, former French Premier Barre
expressed a series of doubts:
First- implementation of the zero option could weaken ... NATO's
ability ... to offset the conventional and chemical superiority of the
Warsaw Pact.... Second: also to be avoided is the probability that
the zero option, by removing an intermediate stage of escalation,
could weaken NATO's capacity for Flexible Response, thereby bring-
ing about the dilemma, if not "all or nothing," at least "all or too lit-
tle.". . . Third: ... just as the credibility of extended deterrence by
the United States implies the physical presence of American forces,
those forces can only stay in Europe so long as they remain protected
by extended U.S. deterrence.... All this suggests that it would be
far preferable, as a first step, to achieve a substantial reduction of
both strategic nuclear forces and medium-range missiles. This would
avoid the decoupling of Europe's defense from the United States."
8
This was a standard French view. The Germans were more divided.
Hans-Dietrich Genscher had been Foreign Minister in the government
of SPD Chancellor Helmut Schmidt when the two-track option was
agreed to and the zero proposal for INF extended; he was still Foreign
Minister in the government of CDU Chancellor Helmut Kohl when the
negotiations became serious; and he still backed them, as did many
other German politicians, including some in the CDU. The defense
analysts (and appointed officials, particularly in the Ministry of
Defense) were far more concerned with the loss of NATO's INF mis-
siles, however. Joffe treated it as a Soviet conspiracy:
Needless to say, Gorbachev knows what he is doing. First, in offer-
ing double-zero, he invited NATO to get rid of its most modem
weapons, the Pershing II and cruise missiles, and to forgo deploy-
ment on the next level down.... The second catch is conceptual.
Nuclear weapons in Europe, especially those that could pierce the
Soviet sanctuary, represented the core of Western Europe's
defenses.... The third catch is psychological. In the age of
"parity"... the Europeans have always sought safety in nuclear
arrangements that obliterate the distinction between local and global
war. Pershing II and cruise missiles standing in the path of a Soviet
advance might just go off (whereas a Minuteman III stationed in
"Barrs, p. 295.
'P,.
. . . . .
7
I!
83
Montana might not), destroying along with Kiev any dream of a war
neatly confined between some Central European "firewalls."11
9
Joffe's view was particularly bitter; the more typical attitude of the
French and German Couplers was summarized in the headline over an
editorial in Le Monde, "Euromissiles: the resigned "yes" of Europe-
ars
"120
ans."
2
The British were, in general, more relaxed than the French and the
CDU Germans. Lord Bramall, former Chief of the General Staff,
expressed a common view:
As someone who has been connected with the problem for seven or
eight years, I firmly believe that in the light of Mr. Gorbachev's so-
called initiative-which only seems to say what many in the West
have been wanting for some time-it makes considerable sense to
start by mutually reducing or eliminating medium-range missiles,
which have always had more useful political and bargaining potential
than real military value.
121
Other Britons favored other starting points, and most had substantial
doubts about the process, beginning in Reykjavik, that initiated the
negotiations culminating in the zero-zero agreement. University of
Southampton Professor Phil Williams' negative summary, however,
described continental fears more closely than those of British Couplers:
There are several aspects of the process which bother many Europe-
ans. The first is that there was little or no consultation about the
negotiations.... Another aspect of the process which worried the
European allies is that the Soviet Union seemed to be far better
prepared for the negotiations than the United States.... West
European concerns about the negotiating process are accompanied by
alarm about the assumptions that President Reagan brought with
him to the negotiations. The European allies see a growing trend in
U.S. thinking toward the deemphasis of nuclear weapons.... The
president's Strategic Defense Initiative and, in particular, his
emphasis on the transition from an offense-dominant to a defense-
dominant world, is seen in Europe as destabilizing and decou-
pling... What makes the zero-zero option even more unpalatable
to European governments is that it was accompanied at Reykjavik by
President Reagan's proposal to eliminate all ballistic missiles over a
10-year period.... Although the United States would still be able to
deter attack on its own territory, there would be additional question
marks over extended deterrence.
122
'
1
1Joseph Joffe, "Cruisin' for a Bruisin': The INF fallout," New Republic, October 5,
1987, pp. 17-18.
1
'
2
Le Monde, May 28, 1987, p. 1.
12'Bramall,
Column 195.
122Phil Williams, "West European Security After Reykjavik," Washington Quarterly,
Spring 1987, pp. 39-42.
i
" "
- 1. ~ ~
*.,. - ' ,:
84
When zero-zero became a fait accompli, acceptance, at least on the
official level, became general and even enthusiastic as the debate
moved on to next steps. Ongoing developments will be discussed in the
Epilog;, but one basis for such developments, in addition to zero-zero,
will probably be a series of proposals produced in Europe in the early
1980s when any real agreements with the Soviets looked unlikely, but
some arms control and disarmament advocates kept on trying.
Their major proposal, for a nuclear-free zone in central Europe, is
associated with the Coupler wing of the German SPD. In 1984, Bun-
destag Deputy Karsten Voigt first made clear that he was not a
Remover unilateralist:
Even if the United States were to renounce unilaterally the deploy-
ment of land-based, intermediate-range weapons in Western Europe,
the West would still possess a sufficient nuclear deterrent. But for
primarily political reasons NATO should not agree to renounce such
deployments until the Soviet Union is ready to reduce its nuclear
arms adequately.
1 3
And then he went on to discuss the nuclear-free zone:
Theoretically, it is conceivable that a devastating war could be fought
in Central Europe with only conventional and short-range nuclear
weapons without any greater risk of escalation. From the perspective
of deterrence, anti-demolition munitions and nuclear artillery con-
tribute little to NATO's military capability.... The Palme [late
Swedish Prime Minister] Commission proposed a nuclear weapons-
free zone extending approximately 150 kilometers in each direction
from the border between NATO and the Warsaw Pact. Agreement
on such a zone should be sought even if compliance with it, particu-
larly at a time of rising tensions, would be difficult to control....
[This] proposal reduces the risk of a nuclear war restricted to Central
Europe.
1
24
This proposal has not been taken up by other segments of the Coupler
community in Germany or elsewhere; it may have been made obsolete
by the fact that zero-zero removes most other nuclear weapons, leaving
the short-range battlefield systems the major remaining nuclear
tripwire for the American strategic deterrent, thus making their
removal unlikely. The nuclear-free zone proposal nonetheless illus-
trates the direction of thinking coming from the portion of the Coupler
school that is centrally interested in arms control and disarmament.
Among the Couplers in general, nuclear arms control is looked at
skeptically because of the fundamental belief that nuclear arms remain
123Voigt, "Nuclear Weapons in Europe: A German Social Democrat's Perspective,"
p. 106.
1241Ibid., pp. 114-115.
85
the essential deterrent against Soviet conventional as well as nuclear
power. By the same token, conventional arms control should be of
more interest, although until very recently it has not been a serious
topic; 15 years of negotiations in Vienna that never got off dead center
have induced some cynicism. In the wake of zero-zero, and the fears
that the removal of nuclear weapons will accentuate the conventional
imbalance in Europe, such controls are being taken very seriously
indeed.
SUMMARY: COUPLER RECOMMENDATIONS
One thing this section has demonstrated is that the Couplers do not
form a close-knit School of Thought, nearly unanimous on all matters;
far from it. It is remarkable, then, that in spite of the wide differences
and vigorous disputes within the school, they do reach consensus-not
unanimity, but consensus-on several broad policy recommendations:
" Europe should move at "all deliberate speed" toward forming a
stronger second pillar for the Alliance. This is agreed upon
both by those most frightened by the prospect of a weakened
U.S. commitment and those most relaxed.
" It is necessary to spend some more on conventional capabilities,
if for no other reason than to satisfy the United States, but not
a lot more. And when the finance ministers say "No," the
answer is acceptable.
" Nuclear deterrence, particularly American nuclear deterrence, is
what keeps the bear from the border, and must be maintained.
* The "rest of the world" outside of Europe is important but not
very important, and the United States should not be diverted
from the preservation of Europe.
" Arms control is A Good Thing, which we should all favor, but
we should also all be suspicious, particularly when the super-
powers agree between themselves. This conclusion may become
more positive, as the implications of zero-zero for conventional
arms control in Europe become clearer.
These all stem, one way or another, from the central value judgment
that the preservation of Europe is the most important objective for
Europeans, and the central analytical premise that the American com-
mitment continues to be necessary for that preservation. The
corresponding policy recommendations of the American Maintainer
school stem from different premises, and turn out considerably dif-
ferent on each count. And all the premises aid recommendations on
- 2,.....: : -
f ':'." ,
86
both sides of the Atlantic may change, given enough real change on the
other side of the Elbe.
Before crossing the Atlantic to the American Maintainer main-
stream, this analysis turns to the two minority schools that help define
the mainstreams-the European Removers and the American With-
drawers.
i
.' ,
, ..... ' : i, ;"
"
'-:' ' ; '
' ' .' t
. .
4!
IV. THE REMOVERS
At our 1986 Annual Conference, my Party once again com-
mitted itself-by an overwhelming vote of 5 to 1-to our
country's full membership and participation in NATO....
The size and location of our country means that using nuclear
weapons would always be pointless or self-destructive, or both.
-British Labour Party Leader Neil Kinnock'
This confession of our faith is incompatible with the develop-
ment, deployment and use of weapons of mass destruction.
Such weapons are capable of exterminating the human race
which God has loved and elevated, and of devastating all of
Creation.
-Reformist Federation (German Reform church)
2
The views of the European peace movement, the Removers, cover a
broad range. On the moderate end are the politicians who, both by
conviction about the requirements for defense and because they are
striving for electoral success with an electorate that can be both
antinuclear and pro-NATO, argue for change within the Alliance. On
the more radical end are the church and other peace movements,
which, like the American disarmament movement, simply want to do
away with nuclear weapons. But it is the central desire to move away
from nuclear defense and deterrence, within the Alliance or outside of
it, slowly or rapidly, conditionally or unconditionally, that defines the
Remover school.
The Removers form a considerable minority in Britain, where they
dominate Labour, the leading opposition party, and also include many
Liberals; and in West Germany, where they include the environmental-
ist Green Party with up to 10 percent of the electorate, and are strong,
although not dominant, in the SPD, which leads the opposition. Their
minority status in both countries was confirmed by elections in 1987,
and electoral arithmetic and calendars make it extremely unlikely that
they will have another chance at gaining power until at least 1991.
'Neil Kinnock, Address to the National Press Club, Washington, D.C., December 4,
1986, pp. 3-11.
2
D= Bekannei zu Jesus Christus und die Friedensverantwortung der Kirche. Rine
Erklarung des Moderamens des Reformierten Bundes, quoted in Thomas Risse-Kappen,
"'Final Respite' or 'Unconditional No'? The Church and Questions of Peace in the
Federal Republic of Germany,- Bulletin of Peace Propoals, Vol. 16, No. 3, 1984, p. 209.
87
.: .,- ',"c
r
.:"T -'i,, . j,, ,,.' , '-., .< ' ; .9
i i Ii | I N H Ill J i l 4i i
88
Further, public opinion surveys as well as voting data in both Britain
and Germany imply that the prospects for both Labour and SPD (or a
not very likely federal-level coalition between the SPD and the Greens)
are directly proportional to the degree of their moderation on defense
issues. The voters in both countries have strongly and consistently
favored the Alliance and the American tie.
3
Nonetheless, public opinion can change. And votes in these coun-
tries (as in the United States) are ordinarily swayed more by domestic
conditions than by international relations. Major economic difficulties
before the next election, for example, could bring to power in either
Britain or Germany governments dominated or at least substantially
influenced by Removers. Whether or not events move in this direc-
tion, the Remover minorities are strong enough to keep the Coupler
governments looking back over their shoulders.
The 1979 decision to deploy INF, for example, added the second
track-the offer to the Soviets to trade INF reductions for SS-20
reductions-because European governments wanted to keep the peace
movement at bay. In the event, when the INF missiles were brought to
Europe, the movement took to the streets and commons, but failed to
prevent entry; had it not been for the second track, the Removers
might have been strong enough to impede installation of the weapons.
As has been discussed, the price the INF Couplers paid for the second
track was the turmoil caused by Gorbachev's unexpected acceptance of
the offer to trade down.
Moreover, in addition to the United Kingdom and the Federal
Republic, the Removers are strong in some of NATO's smaller member
nations, notably in parts of Scandinavia and the Low Countries. They
have been in the minority there too, but in multiparty situations that
are sometimes quite volatile. And each of these countries, although not
contributing major military power to the Alliance, is important because
of location and politics.
For all of these reasons, the European Removers are politically far
more important in the NATO debate than is the radical opposition in
the American debates over strategic nuclear issues and Third World
policies. The following discussion does not analyze the Removers'
views in the same categories (e.g., U.S. Commitment, Conventional-
Nuclear Link) as have been used for the Couplers, and will be for the
American Maintainers. With the Removers as with the other schools,
the choice of issues is as important as the viewpoints on these issues.
This analysis follows the natural contours of the Removers' discourse,
3s., for example, Gregory Flynn and Hans Rattinger (eds.), The Pubic and Atlantic
Defense, Rowman and Allenheld, Totowa, N.J., 1985; and Gebhard L. Schweigler, "Anti-
Americanism in Germany," Waahinaton Quarterly, Winter 1986.
_____ 4 __ _ mX__m____m.
taking up first their negative arguments-what they are against, partic-
ularly nuclear deterrence and defense in Europe-and why, and then
moving to their positive proposals for "defensive defense."
The German Reformist church statement at the head of this section
is radical in the religious pacifist mode that has informed part of the
international peace movement since the invention of nuclear weapons
and, indeed, long before. As a statement of personal faith it stands
with the eloquent words of the American Quakers' precept expressed in
their uncompromising position on nuclear and other war-peace issues:
"Here I stand. Regardless of relevance or consequence I can do no
other."' As an argument on policy, the Reformist statement is part of
the religious debate on nuclear morality centered in some measure
around the more equivocal statement of the American Catholic
bishops, who reluctantly endorsed continued nuclear deterrence while
arguing against almost all uses of nuclear weapons.
5
The German
Catholic bishops took a similar stand as did the Evangelical Church,
much the largest Protestant denomination.
Political radicalism within the West German peace movement is
expressed as advocacy of "nonalignment of the German states, with-
drawal of all foreign troops from Western and Eastern Europe, dissolu-
tion of the NATO and Warsaw Pact military blocs," and sees these
policies not only as leading to elimination of the nuclear threat but
also as a step toward German reunification:
In this way the German question will become an instrument of peace
for Europe; a withdrawal of the two German states from the military
blocs will create a real d6tente zone and at the same time facilitate
closer cooperation between the two German states.... A confedera-
tion between the two German states would be conceivable as a state
in the proces of attaining national unity.
6
This is by no means an expression of the views of all the German
Removers. The more moderate wing-perhaps a majority depending on
where one draws the line between the moderate Removers and the
more radical of the Couplers within the SPD-wants to remain within
NATO while moving away from nuclear deterrence. In its 1986
4American Friends Service Committee, Speak Truth to Power, Philadelphia, 1955,
p.
S&I
Nationsl Conference of Catholic Bishop., The Chanenie of Peace: God's Prmise and
Our Response, Wahington, D.C., 1983.
sBoth of these are quoted in Walther Leisler Kiep, 'The New Deutshlandpolitik,"
Forei Affairs, Winter 1984-85, p. 319. The first is from the Berlin Green Party,
Thesen fur eine ruene Deutschlandpohti, January 1984, in Reader sun deutschkndpoi-
tisohen Konrgres der ORUENEN, March 1984, p. 131; the second from P. Brandt and H.
Ammon, 'Patriotism von Links," in W. Venohr (ed.), Die deutsche Enheit komnt bes-
timmt, Bergiach Gladbach, 1982, pp. 16f.
i , ,-", . ' : . , "
I
90
resolutions, the SPD, as political parties do, balanced its platform
between its two wings. On one key statement, however, concerning
removal of the INF missiles (which had been brought in initially at the
urgent behest of former SPD Chancellor Schmidt), the Removers
clearly won out:
[T]he SPD: appeals to the United States immediately to stop
delivery of further Pershing II and Cruise missiles and to remove
those already deployed; appeals to the Soviet Union to remove the
missiles. counterdeployed in the GDR and Czechoslovakia and drasti-
cally to reduce its SS-20s to the 1979 level. With a view to achieving
these aims an SPD federal government will ... [reverse] the Bundes-
tag decision of 22 November 1983 in order to remove the parliamen-
tary basis for the deployment of such weapons for which permission
was granted by the present conservative government.
7
The seeming symmetry of language on Eastern and Western missiles
does not really obscure the facts that not only are the Western missiles
to be eliminated while the Eastern ones are to be reduced to former
levels; but that the Soviet Union is appealed to, whereas the Bundestag,
were the SPD to gain control, would require the removal of the Ameri-
can missiles. Indeed, when, some months later, Gorbachev agreed to
an arms agreement eliminating all of his SS-20s in return for all of the
Western Pershing Ils and cruise missiles, the SPD was left in the
embarrassing position of having to "retreat" from unilateral Western
withdrawal to bilateral withdrawal, which would remove the Soviet
missiles as well.
Nonetheless, the SPD firmly endorsed the Federal Republic's links
to the West:
The Federal Republic of Germany is politically and militarily
integrated into the European Community and NATO. For as long as
the Soviet Union remains an excessively armed superpower in Europe
the West Europeans will need to be linked with the military counter-
balance of the United States.
8
And in several other ways-for example forward defense and continua-
tion of conscription-it shows itself to be far from pacifist or other rad-
icalism.
The British political left is quite similar. Labour Party Leader
Kinnock's balance, set forth in his statement quoted at the head of this
section, is expressed in terms of strongly antinuclear policies backed by
strongly pro-NATO arguments:
7
Social Democratic Party of Germany, Peace and Security, Resolutions adopted by the
Party Conference, Nuremberg, 25-29 August 1986, p. 13.
8
lbid., p. 2.
! -
91
Britain must choose between effective conventional defense and its
own nuclear weapons, and we in the Labor Party hope that it will
choose conventional defense even if Britain has to take unilateral
action to renounce the nuclear program. Moreover, a careful stra-
tegic assessment of United States nuclear weapons systems in Britain
leads us to the conclusion that these nuclear systems should be with-
drawn....
Our entire effort in the Labour Party is dedicated to ensuring that
our country is effectively defended and that our alliance with our fel-
low democracies remains strong. To those ends, we want to make
the transfer of precious funds from expenditure on Polaris and Tri-
dent nuclear forces to improved conventional capabilities, thereby
enhancing both our domestic defense and the quality of our NATO
contribution. Moreover, we want to insure that real progress is made
toward changing the "first use" NATO strategy which currently con-
tradicts the interests of common security between East and WestO
Kinnock's then-Shadow Foreign Secretary and former Labour
Defense Minister Denis Healey (he left the shadow position after
Labour lost the June 1987 election, because of his age), after presenting
a similar set of arguments for the same positions, concluded on a
rather different note:
The main objective of a Labour government in NATO would be to
persuade its allies to cooperate in building an effective conventional
deterrent in Europe.... Yet we recognize that we cannot change
NATO strategy unilaterally and that NATO strategy must be indi-
visible. So we shall continue to cooperate in the existing strategy
until we succeed in changing it, as the Kennedy Administration did
in the 1960s.
10
The last passage sounds very much as if, had Labour won the 1987
election, at least the plank about ousting American nuclear weapons
from Britain would have been implemented very slowly indeed.
Much of the analytical basis for Labou'r's Remover political policies
lies in a study entitled Defence Without the Bomb, prepared in 1983 by
the Alternative Defence Commission made up of academics, clerics,
union officials, and others. As in the German case, the intellectual
base is far more radical than the political cutting edge represented by
Kinnock. The study is, in fact, a rather radical analysis with a few
members of the Commission being even more radical than the con-
sensus that wrote the document. In sharp distinction to Healey's "we
will teach them patiently," the group's position is:
Nel Kinnock, "How Labor Would Defend Britain," New York Time, March 27,
1987, p. 31.
lODeni Healey, "A Labour Britain, NATO and the Bomb," Foreign Affa., Spring
1987, p. 726.
92
The Commission
is unanimous
that a nuclear
disarmed
Britain
could
not accept NATO's current nuclear-based strategy. It debated at
length whether it would be better for Britain to stay in NATO and
seek to influence its policy in a non-nuclear direction, or to leave the
Alliance altogether. The majority reached the conclusion that Brit-
ain should seek to initiate a process of nuclear disarmament in
Europe by staying in the Alliance subject to the condition that
NATO does move decisively toward abandoning any reliance on a
nuclear strategy. The goal of de-nuclearising NATO strategy implies
the following steps: (1) Acceptance by NATO of a policy of no-first-
use of nuclear weapons. (2) Withdrawal of short-range, 'battlefield,"
nuclear weapons. (3) Withdrawal of "theatre" nuclear weapons. (4)
The decoupling of the U.S. strategic deterrent from NATO by ending
reliance on U.S. nuclear weapons as an element in NATO strat-
egy....
If NATO was not willing to renounce nuclear strategies, Britain
should withdraw from the Alliance. It could then explore the possi-
bility of alternative approaches to collective security in Europe, or
adopt a non-aligned position. Some Commission members thought
that from the outset Britain should adopt a non-aligned approach."
The study provides a variety of arguments and proposals in its 300
pages. One thing it does not go in for is America-bashing. Although it
is obviously quite critical of American nuclear policies, the nearest it
comes to hostility is in terms of future possibilities, and slightly
shamefacedly at that: "If Britain went non-nuclear and left NATO, we
would be less directly threatened by Soviet nuclear strategy, but we
might also need to ask whether the USA posed any kind of military
threat," a theme not expanded upon. In fact, although peace-
movement hostility to the United States and belief in the "moral
equivalency" of the United States and the Soviet Union is a theme fre-
quently written about, it is one that is hardly ever written down by
those who espouse it.
13
The Alternative Defence Commission volume provides little assess-
ment, hostile or otherwise, of the United States. Its discussion of the
Soviet Union is more extensive, falling within the "on-the-one-hand,
on-the-other-hand" frame that was the most optimistic anyone was
willing to get in the pre-Gorbachev era. One contradiction to a stan-
dard and central Coupler belief is set forth, however. It concerns "Fin-
landization."
"Alternative Defence Commission, Defence Without the Bomb, Taylor and Francis,
London, 1983, pp. 8-9.
'1
2
Aternative Defence Commission, p. 56.
13For a Danish third-person version, see Monitor, "SDP Successor Generation Less
Sympathetic to U.S., E.C. Goals," BerWi~ske Tidende, April 28, 1986, p. 12.
93
The term Finlandisation tends to be used in a way that oversimpli-
fies the degree of control exercised by the Soviet Union over Finland.
Though Finland is obliged to observe a neutrality which in some
respects leans towards the Soviet Union, and limits its criticism of
the Soviet Union, it undoubtedly retains independent democratic
institutions, and its economic links with the USSR benefit Finland
and do not prevent it from trading freely with the rest of the
world.... A comparison with Panama's relationship to the United
States ... puts Finland's position into better perspective. As a coun-
try small in population bordering on a powerful neighbor, and occu-
pying a position of strategic importance to it, Finland enjoys a rea-
sonable
degree of autonomy.
14
It may be noted that Britain does not border on any such "powerful
neighbor." West Germans may take less comfort from the "reasonable
degree of autonomy," however.
The Alternative Defence Commission also takes up and extensively
discusses the positive theme of the Removers-nonnuclear defensive
strategy, centered largely on "defensive defense." The Commission
advocates:
preparations for military resistance which would deny an easy victory
to an invading force. This aim might be met either by having the
ability to hold an attacking force for several weeks by an in-depth
deployment which would ensure serious attrition of advancing forces.
It... means possessing few, if any, offensive missiles or long-range
ground-attack aircraft, and limiting the number of tanks to those
required for a mobile defense.
15
Another exclusion (in addition to offensive missiles and long-range air-
craft) suggested by a Danish analyst, contrasts sharply with the tech-
nological hopes of the Couplers: "without entirely abandoning
advanced weapons systems, we have to put the main emphasis on older
and more primitive weapons which are not dependent on radar and
which, therefore, are not as accurate but which, on the other hand,
cannot be put out of action electronically."
1 6
Coupler David Gates' pre-
viously cited critique of defensive defense, however, suggests that, in
contrast to the Removers' ethos of militia defense of home and hearth,
they would, in fact, also have to depend on high technology to be mili-
tarily effective.
The issue of defense on the continent is of more specific interest for
the Germans (and for the Danes) than it is for the British. Andreas
von Bulow, a defense analyst and spokesman for the SPD, admires
Swiss and Swedish defenses and argues for a similar German system:
14
Alternative Defence Commission, p. 76.
'
5
lbid., pp. 179-180.
160le Koefoed, "Aspects of 'Defensive' Military System Discussed," Berdmphe
Tidende, December 23, 1985, p. 9.
i ummn m mm mm rm= rm= m~m~l.. ,,a ,,,,,. mw m .. .. ...........
94
A look at the Swedish and Swiss structures strikingly shows that
these certainly not militarily incompetent nations put a considerable
emphasis on the infantry.... For their defense the Swiss and the
Swedes have thus set up relatively tight-knit configurations in order
to stop attacking, highly-mechanized units; behind these stand
defense forces with strong tank components that can be used at
points of main effort where there is a danger of breakthrough. These
forces are not sufficient, however, to be used for territory-taking
operations. In contrast, at the center of NATO's armament is the
great mass of tanks....
The Federal Republic will be able to maintain a balanced defense
commitment in the 1990s only if military structures are radically
changed.... A more static defense requires a great deal of man-
power in case of war. This personnel, especially for a network that is
strong on anti-tank defense, should by no means be manned by con-
scripts, but rather, as in Sweden and Switzerland, by reserves.
7
Von Bulow's ultimate objective for Western defenses, aside from the
denuclearization of Europe, is surprisingly like that of some of the
French Couplers. He wants Western Europe to defend itself.
By the turn of the century, at least, the conventional defense of
Western Europe should be in the hands of the West Europeans. A
certain reliance on the U.S. nuclear umbrella, possibly also a limited
physical presence of conventional U.S. troops, for example, in geotac-
tically precarious Berlin, might still be necessary. The East Euro-
pean communist regimes should by then be able to stand on their
feet. Their own security system should no longer be dependent on
the Soviet Union.'"
The Removers are some years at least from power in the major
European NATO nations, Britain and West Germany. (They are vir-
tually nonexistent in France.) In some of the smaller member nations,
notably Denmark and the Netherlands, the combination of the
inherent political instability associated with large numbers of small
parties maneuvering for position and with vocal Remover contingents
means that such issues as denuclearization and defensive defense loom
quite large in the arms debates and sometimes in the national political
debates. In Denmark in particular, former Social Democratic Prime
Minister Anker Jorgensen, whose party did well enough in the Sep-
tember 1987 elections to allow him to jockey for return to the Prime
Ministership (he did not make it) took a stand a year earlier in favor of
defensive defense:
1
Andreas von Bulow, "Defensive Entanglement: an Alternative Strategy for NATO,"
in Andrew Pierre (ed.), The Conventional Defense of Europe, pp. 136-147.
8
l1bid., p. 151.
A nonthreatening nonoffensive defense structure is a defense system
which by its structure demonstrates peaceable nonoffensive aims, but
which at the same time possesses the capacity to work together with
other nations in order to inflict on an attacker such losses in and
from one's own sovereign territory that attack cannot be assumed
beforehand to result in a successful outcome for the attacker.
1
One of the ways that the Social Democrats proposed to implement this
policy was to move the Danish NATO brigade in Schleswig-Holstein
(West Germany) to Jutland-Funen (Denmark).
More broadly, an organization called Scandilux, made up of the
Social Democratic parties of Benelux and the continental NATO
members of Scandinavia, has, according to Danish Professor Nikolaj
Petersen, coalesced around a set of ideas that can serve as a summary
of Remover recommendations. They are:
the concept of "common security".. . between the NATO and War-
saw Pact countries....
the ccncept of a larger and more independent European role in
Western defence....
an alternative NATO strategy for the defence of Western Europe,
including the following elements: (a) reduction of the role of nuclear
weapons in NATO strategy, including a large-scale removal
of... tactical nuclear weapons, the adoption of a no-first-use
doctrine,. . . and the establishment of nuclear-free zones.. .(b)
opposition to "deep-strike" strategies.. .(c) formulation of a so-called
"defensive" concept for the defence of Western Europe.'
It is not clear what the political prospects are for the Removers,
either in Scandilux (where, for example, Norwegian Defense Minister
Hoist, a member of the Social Democratic government, remains a char-
ter Coupler), or in the larger countries (where the possibilities before
the 1991/92 elections are limited). What is clear is that the European
Remover school has as complete and coherent a vision of policy and
the future as any other. Its closeness to power (and, in the cases of
Denis Healey and Anker Jorgensen at least, its experience of past
power) and the depth of its support have enabled it to think through
its ideas in a way not required of all radical factions in all aspects of
the arms debate of the 1980s.
1
9Quoted in Berlingske Tidende, June 17, 1986, p. 4.
2Nicolsj Petersen, "The Scandilux Experiment: Towards a Transnational Social
Democratic Security Perspective," Cooperation and Conflict: Nordic Journal of Interna-
tional Politics, March 1985, p. 11.
".4
V. THE WITHDRAWERS
Approaching the millenim... Americans are coming to real-
ize that our front line is the skyline; America's primary
national defense interest is to protect itself from the threat of
incoming missiles. Our global mission is better served by
investing money in a new nuclear shield than in manning old
casernes in Germany.
-William Safire
Abroad, an assertive American foreign policy meets with
great resistance from our allies, most of whom are utterly
risk-averse, and some of whom believe that a grudging
appeasement of Soviet power will mollify its messianic
appetite. This is especially evident in Western Europe,
where, under the American nuclear umbrella, national pride
has softened into something that resembles national pique.
-Irving Kristol
2
The American Withdrawer school is newer and narrower, and there-
fore less complete in its ideas, than its corresponding (in a sense)
European school, the Removers. The two correspond, even though the
Removers come primarily from the "left" and the Withdrawers from
the "right," in that they both favor a sharp drawdown of the American
commitment to NATO. Further, they both have deep historical roots:
the Removers in pacifism and post-World War II European anti-
Americanism, the Withdrawers in the pre-World War II American iso-
lationism echoed by Safire and the post-war visceral anticommunism
exemplified by Kristol. Indeed, although the American peace move-
ment, on the left, pays little attention to NATO, the policy recommen-
dations that they do make fit quite nicely with those of the right With-
drawers. They do not share the strong anticommunism, but they do
share the isolationism; and they fit the defining characteristic: they
want the United States to withdraw from Europe.
Avowed isolationism has been out of date in the United States since
the early 1950s. True, one American undercurrent in the isolationist
tradition-that, since the restoration of West European prosperity by
the 1960s, the Europeans have not carried a fair share of the responsi-
bility for their own defense-provides an important basis for the
1
William Safire, "Europe After NATO," New York Times, June 22, 1987, p. 21.
2
frving Kristol, "Foreign Policy in an Age of Ideology," National Interest, Fall 1985,
p. 14.
96
L
97
Withdrawers' arguments. But it took cumulating feelings on the Amer-
ican right that the West Europeans were insufficiently anticommunist
and insufficiently supportive of American anticommunism and other
American global interests to reactivate their isolationism in the early
1980s.
The Withdrawers' view of insufficient European anticommunism
had early roots in lack of NATO support for our war in Vietnam. In
the late 1970s, some of the Withdrawers' feelings were based on the
lukewarm (at best) support by our allies for President Carter's post-
Afghanistan Olympic boycott; some were based on what was perceived
as incomplete support for the Polish Solidarity movement; some on
lack of support regarding Iran and the Persian Gulf; some, a bit later,
on West European opposition to U.S. activities in Central America. A
precipitating event in the early 1980s, though, took place within
Europe-the bargain by the West European nations to bring in
Siberian natural gas through a pipeline that some Americans contend
was subsidized largely by concessions from these nations.
3
NYU
Economics Professor Melvin Krauss, one of the most prolific of the
Withdrawers, uses the pipeline as an instance to combine the
insufficient-anticommunism theme with another used by the With-
drawers that the West Europeans are too willing to compromise princi-
ple for economic advantage:
[Tithe pipeline deal clearly is part of the overall European strategy of
Soviet appeasement. But there is another important aspect of the
deal.... The truth of the matter is that the Soviet pipeline deal
probably had as much to do with increasing employment and profits
in a severely depressed European industry as it did with paying trib-
ute to the Kremlin.
4
At another point, under the subhead "European Defense Free-
Riding," Krauss asserts that "The reason we allocate a greater portion
of our economic product to defense than the Europeans is not that we
are more warlike than our allies, but that we subsidize Europe's
defense needs,"' and he defends this analysis with numbers. Burden-
sharing is a common American theme, and not only among the With-
drawers; as has been noted, Europeans cite other numbers to argue the
point.
Krauss and fellow NYU Professor Kristol, editor of the neoconser-
vative Public Interest quarterly, are both cited by French publisher
3 Se Geneher.
4
Melvin Krauss, How NATO Weakens the West, Simon and Schuster, New York,
1986, p. 149.
|ibid., p. 18.
... . .. I L + " " :
. .. _. ..- " + '.,. " 4
95
Jimmy Goldsmith as leaders of the American drive to cut the commit-
ment to Europe.
6
The citation is essentially accurate, but Goldsmith
also mentions Senator Sam Nunn; and Nunn, as well as Henry Kis-
singer and former National Security Advisor Zbigniew Brzezinski who
are frequently grouped with Nunn, is quite different from Krauss and
from Kristol. Nunn, Kissinger, and Brzezinski are not Withdrawers;
they are interested in restructuring NATO or NATO strategy precisely
in order to preserve the Alliance under what they see as new condi-
tions. As such, they form an important portion of the American Main-
tainer consensus quite different from the Withdrawer viewpoint.
Kristol philosophizes historically on NATO interference with
America's larger mission:
When George Washington warned the young republic against any
entangling alliances, the U.S. was a medium-size power, geographi-
cally distant from the Great Powers of Europe.... The U.S. today,
however, is one of the Great Powers, not a middling power. The
meaning for us, therefore, of an entafgling alliance has changed...
In general, an entangling alliance for a superpower today is one that
is more likely to inhibit or prevent its taking action that it deems to
be appropriate or timely. The Soviet Union, of course, has no such
entangling alliances....
[T]he NATO alliance, as now constituted, is not limited to the
defense of Western Europe.... As things now stand, the U.S. would
not even have the legal right to use any of the American bases in
Western Europe to support military operations in the Mediterranean,
Northern Africa or the Middle East. Several members of NATO
have made it quite clear that they would feel free to deny us this
right, should they disapprove of our action.
7
And what may be worse yet, according to Krauss, is that the United
States has softened in response to West European softness: "The
Europeans said, in effect, 'You adopt d~tente, or else we won't let you
defend us'- and they got away with it."
s
They also get away with
opposing us in international forums: "Western Europe often votes
against the United States on key strategic issues in the United
Nations-Nicaragua, El Salvador, Grenada, and so forth."
9
His conclu-
sion on the theme of collective European softness is in the form of a
rhetorical question: "[C]an there be any doubt as to the long-range
6
Jimmy Goldsmith, "Le levier de Ia d6fense," L'Express, February 27-5 March, 1987,
p. 24.
7
lrving Kristol, "'Global Unilateralism' and 'Entangling Alliances,'" Wall Street Jour-
na4 February 3, 1986, p. 18.
sMelvin Krauss, 'Why Has Reagan Yielded to Europe?" New York Times, January 6,
1986, p. A17.
9Krauss, How NATO Weakens the West, p. 27.
10%
hv
99
debilitating effect wrought by the American security blanket on Euro-
pean perceptions
of the external danger?"
10
Krauss's book has specific chapters on West Germany and France
(although, surprisingly, neither a chapter nor even an index reference
to Britain). On Germany: "The desire for dtente is so strong in the
Federal Republic that it transcends political parties and ideological
allegiances."
11
This, however, is in large measure the fault of the
United States:
[T]he idea of keeping West Germany in a militarily inferior position
by having a foreign power provide for its defense and basic security
needs had considerable appeal after World War I, given Germany's
dubious historical record... When West Germany's commitment to
democracy could no longer be challenged and its economy became the
strongest in Western Europe, it should have been obvious that unless
there was an adjustment of its status as a militarily inferior nation,
West Germany increasingly would feel estranged from those respon-
sible for its condition and particularly from that country most
responsible and upon which it was most dependent, the United
States. The appeal of neutralism to the West Germans should have
come as no surprise, though it did to many.'
2
And as for France, in 1983 he held up French independence as a model
for what NATO should be, suggesting a separate German nuclear
deterrent in addition to the French and the British." By the time of
his 1986 book, however, he was more dubious:
Though the basics of official French defense policy have changed
very little under Socialist Mitterand... there is a new revisionism
gaining credibility in France that threatens the entire Gaullist
defense edifice. This new French revisionism has a most unlikely
spokesman in Yves Montand, the popular French actor and chanson-
nier.'
4
If it was fair for Krauss to cite Montand as a spokesman for France, it
was also fair a year later for Goldsmith to cite Krauss as a spokesman
for the United States.
More recently, Krauss has put his argument for turning nuclear con-
trol over to individual West European nations into the context of the
zero-zero negotiations:
'
0
lbid., p. 28.
1
Ibid., p. 93.
121bid., p. i0.
1
3Melvin Krauss, "It's Time to Change the Atlantic Alliance," Wal Street Jowntal,
March 3, 1983, p. 24.
H
4
Kraus, How NATO Weakens the West, p. 130.
I " , " ' " "" " ' ' ,, ' ; '- " -"j:
100
As pointed out by Gregory Fossedal of the Hoover Institution... the
president could respond to Mr. Gorbachev's offer to negotiate the
zero-based option by announcing his intention to give control of all
U.S. medium-range nuclear weapons located on European soil to the
Europeans.... The Europeans may or may not accept the American
lead in this matter, that is for them, not the U.S. to decide. For our
part, we should offer the missiles to the nation-states in which the
missiles currently are located. If the Europeans want an alternative
arrangement, we should stand ready to accommodate them.,
Christopher Layne, an attorney writing in Foreign Policy quarterly,
picks up the burden-sharing theme of the other Withdrawers and
comes out with similar recommendations for getting the United States
out of NATO. Layne, however, does not share the ideological anticom-
munism of most of the other Withdrawers:
Short of war, Europe's division can best be ended by a negotiated
superpower disengagement.... The United States has a vital
interest in lessening the tensions from Europe's division: Central
Europe has been the focal point of superpower confrontation for 40
years.... Both superpowers have an interest in reconciling legiti-
mate Soviet security concerns with Eastern Europe's desire for
greater political autonomy. The goal of disengagement, therefore,
would be not to induce states to leave Moscow's security orbit but to
achieve Eastern Europe's Finlandization.
1
'
Layne is of the right; the one affiliation he uses to identify himself
for his published articles, for example, is with the Cato Institute, an
organization devoted to very free-market' economics and associated pol-
itics. But his arguments, lacking the anticommunist tone of Kristol
and Krauss, are similar to those made by Richard Barnet of the Insti-
tute for Policy Studies on the left. Barnet, one of the few American
analysts on that end of the spectrum to include NATO seriously in his
military-disarmament writings, suggests that neither the Soviet threat
nor the American deterrent are any longer very plausible to West
Europeans and that, as a result, although Europe is capable of fielding
its own stronger forces, "taxpayers on the continent are not enthusias-
tic about supporting larger defense budgets or more conscription."
7
The central policy recommendation stemming from this reasoning
makes Barnet a Withdrawer:
'
5
Melvin Krauss, "Let Europe Negotiate with Gorbachev," WaU Street JournaL,
March 6, 1987, p. 30.
1Chrstopher Layne, "Atlanticiam Without NATO," Foreign Poicy, Summer 1987,
p. 84.
17
Richmrd J. Barnet, "Reflections: The Four Pillars," New Yorker, March 9, 1987,
p. 80.
101
Thus, the Europeans should bear the primary responsibility for their
own defense. The United States should use its power to make the
military environment in Europe less dangerous by negotiating the
denuclearization of the military forces facing one another in Europe
and by taking substantial steps toward the demilitarization of the
Continent.... The reality is that Europe can be defended only by
non-nuclear means, and the appropriate men and women to under-
take that defense are Europeans."'
Layne, like the other right Withdrawers, does not share Barnet's
desire for denuclearization; nonetheless, his recommendations sound
similar. His withdrawal stance comes in two styles, bilateral and uni-
lateral. The bilateral negotiated version revolves around the "reunifi-
cation and neutralization of Germany" and the "dissolution of NATO
and the Warsaw Pact."'
9
The unilateral version, which is accompanied
by a West German independent nuclear deterrent force rather than
German reunification, proposes: "Washington should fix an ironclad
timetable for the phased withdrawal over 4 years of all ground, air, and
nuclear forces from Europe. At the conclusion of its pullout, the for-
mal U.S. commitment to NATO would end."'
Not even Kristol would go quite as far as complete withdrawal of
both forces and commitment. His object, like Layne's, is to put Europe
on its own:
Obviously NATO-even a purely European NATO-would need a
sufficiency of [nuclear] weapons.., to deter a Soviet first use of
them, regardless of any arms control treaties that might be signed.
But reserving those weapons for this purpose would mean that
Western Europe would finally have to face its moment of truth: the
recognition that to deter the Soviets it would have to develop its con-
ventional forces, and convincingly assert the will to use them.
21
The "even a purely European NATO" implies that he is still open to a
transatlantic alliance, were that possible under acceptable terms. His
recommendation for the United States is a reduced, but not completely
dissolved, American commitment to Western Europe:
This means that NATO, as currently structured, is an archaic insti-
tution, that the defense of Western Europe will become primarily a
Western European responsibility, that Western Europe will have to
gird itself to fight and (hopefully) win a conventional war against the
"SIbid., pp. 81-82.
19
Christopher Layne, "Deutschland Uber Allies," New Republic, September 28, 1987,
p. 13.
mLayne, "Atlanticism Without NATO," p. 33.
21
lrving Kristol, "Nuclear NATO: Moment of Truth," Wail Street Journa, July 9,
1987, p. 28.
I
i4.
102
Soviet Union-with American help, if needed, but not with a recourse
to nuclear weapons.2
Krauss has a slightly different summary recommendation, close to
Layne but consistent with his own emphases on balanced contributions
and global anticommunism:
Washington should announce a phased withdrawal of U.S. troops
over a period of, say, five years.. . [but] a distinction should be
made between Europe's flank states and center. Clearly, in terms of
resources and the potential to hold together under duress, Europe's
center is far stronger than its flanks. Scandinavia is of sufficient
concern to the core states of Western Europe that they could be
expected to look after the northern flanks should the U.S. depart....
But what is to become of the flank states like Turkey, that do not
shortchange their defense and have significant strategic value to the
United States? Perhaps it would be wise for the U.S. to make a
separate bilateral agreement with Turkey after we leave Europe to
insure its security.2
Finally, mention should be made of a specifically naval version.
Washington analyst Jeffrey Record, paralleling the reasoning of the
other Withdrawers in a 1982 booklet he wrote with retired Admiral
Robert Hanks, lists three recommendations:
Withdrawal of non-nuclear U.S. ground forces from Germany and
attendant alterations in the U.S. Army's size and force structure.
A major expansion in U.S. naval power and seaborne force projection
capabilities.
Creation of a new global strategy based primarily on sea power and
sea-borne force projection capabilities, and oriented primarily toward
non-NATO contingencies."'
Withdrawal of U.S. ground forces implies a different direction from
Kristol's willingness to extend conventional help only, but otherwise
the recommendations are consistent. The naval version differs from
the other Withdrawer writings too in one additional and crucial partic-
ular: the stress on global sea-borne force projection has become part of
the Reagan administration's military strategy for the United States,
although certainly not accompanied by withdrawal from Europe.
The Withdrawers are not all identical, not even the pronuclear
right-wing Withdrawers. But where they do come together is in their
22Kristol, "Foreign Policy in an Age of Ideology,' p. 14.
2Krauss, How NATO Weakens the West, pp. 237-238.
UJeffrey Record, "Beyond NATO: Now Military Directions for the United States," in
Jeffrey Record and Robert J. Hanks, U.S. Strategy at the Crosroads: Two Views, Insti-
tute for Foreign Policy Analysis, Inc., Cambridge and Washington, July 1982, p. 29.
to3
central recommendation to the United Stater Get out of Europe. In
this they are similar to most of the European Removers, but they differ
from the mainstream American consensus, the Maintainers; some
Maintainers want to restructure NATO and the American commit-
ment, but they want to do it to strengthen both. "Maintaining and
strengthening" is their theme, not "getting out."
I
tI
tI
14
. :.++++.,+
VI. THE MAINTAINERS
The message is that we want to be a part of NATO; that we
are going to continue to be a part of NATO whether this
amendment passes or does not pass; that we will even con-
tinue to be a part of NATO if our European allies do not
comply with any of the provisions of this amendment; that
we will continue to have hundreds of thousands of troops in
NATO even if this amendment passes and even if the allies
do not comply with any of its provisions or tests. We will
still have a nuclear deterrent that will not only protect this
Nation but explicitly help protect our European allies. We'
will continue to have theater nuclear capability and commit-
ment to our European allies. We will continue to have naval
commitment....
But the amendment is designed to give NATO as an alliance
every incentive to improve its conventional defense. The rea-
son we need to improve conventional defense is that the con-
tinued reliance on the early use of nuclear weapons is
diametrically opposed to the national security interests of
this country and the security interests of our Western Euro-
pean allies....
[1If we do not have allies that are going to do their part,
there is no need for the American taxpayer to continue to
spend billions and billions and billions of dollars.... We
can have a tripwire-that is, having our forces basically link
the American nuclear deterrent to the defense of Europe-for
a lot less money.
-Senator Sam Nunn (Dem., Ga.), discussing his 1984
amendment to gradually withdraw some American
troops from Europe unless the European allies
made certain specified increases in their
contributions to the Alliance.'
Just as their own preservation is the central value judgment for
West Europeans and the U.S. commitment to the defense of Western
Europe is the focus of their debate on how to preserve their existence
and independence, preserving itself (and the rest of the world) from
nuclear holocaust is the central American value, and the
Conventional-Nuclear Link-the threshold-is the how-to on which
the Maintainers focus.
1
Senator Sam Nunn, Congruiona Recor Senate, June 20, 1964, p. 87722.
104
106
For the Americans as for the Europeans, the commitment and the
threshold are two sides of a coin. Senator Nunn's ringing reaffirma-
tion of the commitment to NATO defines the Maintainer school, but
the commitment is not much debated it is assumed rather than being
dissected as it is by the Couplers. Nunn's desire to. raise the nuclear
threshold, however, also commands a near-unanimous Maintainer con-
sensus, and how to do it absorbs much consideration by American offi-
cials and analysts.
The three points mentioned in the introductory chapter-No Early
Use of nuclear weapons, the need for stronger conventional capabilities
to support this, and the continued American commitment to NATO-
are, in fact, matters of consensus among the Maintainers. That is not
to say that they do not argue with one another; this section brings out
wide differences of opinion. Almost all of these differences, however,
turn out to be on overarching issues that concern NATO but are not
primarily about NATO-SDI and arms control, for example.
2
The
analysis here covers the NATO-related aspects of these debates, but
almost all the debates stop at the water's edge; the Maintainers all
espouse approximately the same policies toward NATO Europe.
MILITARY ISSUES
The Conventional/Nuclear Link
General Bernard Rogers set forth the Maintainers' view of NATO's
central military problem and the principle by which it should be solved,
in one of the many statements he made as Supreme Allied Com-
mander, Europe (SACEUR):
NATO's current conventional posture does not provide our nations
with adequate deterrence of Warsaw Pact non-nuclear aggression or
intimidation derived from the threat of such aggression. If attacked
conventionally today, NATO would face fairly quickly the decision of
escalating to a nuclear response in order to try to cause the aggressor
to halt his advance.... Credible deterrence requires NATO to attain
a conventional capability that would give us a reasonable prospect of
frustrating a non-nuclear attack by conventional means.... [This]
"reasonable prospect" formula is compatible with Flexible Response.,
The Maintainer consensus on both the problem description and the
need for its solution encompasses a broad range of officials and
For discusion of thee isus, oee m vine, The Strat Nuclear Debate.
S(eral Bernard Roer, #NATO's Straw an Undervalued Cumey,- in Interna-
tona Instote for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper M06, p.6.
L 8um uu m mma ml . .
106
analysts. Whether or how the solution can be brought about com-
mands much less of a consensus.
The consensus in favor of raising the threshold is a strong one,
including debaters who disagreed greatly on other nuclear issues. On
one end of the range, Albert Wohistetter, a leader of the group of
American analysts who feel that deterrence, particularly in Europe,
depends on our ability and willingness to use a variety of nuclear
options," is nonetheless clear that these options are last resorts that
should be avoided by being equally prepared to meet conventional force
with conventional defense. In a 1987 paper, for example, he repeated
the conclusion of the report of the 1961 Acheson Commission in which
he participated-
It emphasized the raising of the nuclear threshold, not its
removal.... It was more credible that we would use conventional
force to repel a conventional invasion and, if our conventional forces
were overwhelmed, that we would use nuclear weapons, if we could
use them discriminatsly and for a military purpose.'
On the antinuclear end of the spectrum, the "Gang of Four"-
McGeorge Bundy, George Kennan, Robert McNamara, and Gerard
Smith-while advocating serious discussion of No First Use by the
West of nuclear weapons,
6
recognized that they were suggesting an ulti-
mate direction, not an immediate policy proposal. In a later article,
the four, as part of a larger gang of ten, espoused No First Use as a
long-run goal, but No Early Use as an implementable step in current
and developing policy:
We believe that eventually the United States, in concert with its
NATO allies, should formalize its commitment not to initiate the use
of nuclear weapons and should alter its deployments, war plans, and
attitudes accordingly....
As an initial measure, the Western alliance could adopt a policy of no
early use .... A logical next step would be a policy of no early
second use .... We would argue, finally, that the United States
should adopt a policy of no strategic first use-a commitment not to
initiate the use of American strategic weapons based on the U.S.
mainland or at sea.
7
'See Levine, The Strae Nuclear Debate.
6Albert Wobistt, "Swords Without Shields," National Interest, Summer 1987,
pp. 53-54.
eMcGeorge Bundy, George F. Kennan, Robert S. McNamara, and Gerard Smith,
"Nuclear Weapons and the Atlantic Alliance,' Forein Affair, Spring 1962.
7
McGeorge Bundy, Morton H. Halperin, William W. Kaufmann, George F. Kennan,
Robert S. McNamara, Madalene O'Donnes, Leon V. Sigel, Gerard C. Smith, Richard H.
m n m nnlh mnN m m - - -- - .. . ... ... r
a
107
No Early Use is another name for the Maintainers' consensus goal,
a threshold as high as possible. The terminology crosses the spectrum
to those who remain far from the No-First-Use position. Ambassador
David Abshire, for example, then the Reagan administration's
representative on the NATO Council, has stressed that: "It is most
important to improve conventional defense because we must never be
forced to contemplate the prospect of too early use of nuclear
weapons.
"s
Abshire's stress on conventional improvement to raise the threshold
is also part of the Maintainer consensus, but many analysts contend
that as NATO is currently postured, No Early Use is almost impossi-
ble; NATO will have to use nuclear weapons almost immediately if it is
to fight at all. John Steinbruner of the Brookings Institution, for
example, contended in 1983 that:
As NATO forces have evolved, the capability to use nuclear weapons
has been closely associated with conventional forces. Artillery and
tactical air units that provide supporting firepower for the ground
armies responsible for holding NATO territory can use both conven-
tional and nuclear ordnance and are trained to do so. The elaborate
management procedures necessarily associated with nuclear weapons
inhibit flexibility in conventional operations and pose hard choices
for NATO commanders. In net effect the presence of nuclear
delivery systems in forward units introduces a strong bias toward
their use in combat, if not actually first then certainly very early.'
Since 1983, nobody has suggested that the threshold has risen substan-
tially, although Robert Osgood's fear, a year later, that it was dropping
rapidly, was also unjustified.
1
Such ever-present fears of ever-worse
conventional capabilities, provide one more illustration of the ubiquity
of former Defense Secretary James Schlesinger's colonel's rubber-
stamp, "In this perilous moment in the history of the alliance...
Steinbruner and Osgood doubted NATO's conventional capability to
postpone the decision to go nuclear in Europe. At about the same
time, William Kaufmann questioned the other end of the Flexible
Response range, the potential use of American strategic nuclear forces:
Ullman, and Paul C. Warnke, "Back from the Brink," Atlantic Monthly, August 1986,
pp. 36-41.
sDavid Abshire, Speech to the Southern Center for International Affairs, reprinted in
the Congressional Record, Senate, June 20, 1984, p. 7751.
9
John D. Steinbruner, "Introduction," in John D. Steinbruner and Leon V. Sigal
(eds.), Alliance Security: NATO and the No-First-Use Question, Brookings Institution,
Washington, D.C., 1983, p. 3.
lRobert Osgood, "Summation," in Netherlands Institute of International Relations,
Clingendael, Conventional Balance in Europe: Problems, Strategies and Technologies,
Zoetermeer, the Netherlands, May 11-13, 1984, p. 82.
Ian
j
108
Whatever NATO's military guidance may say, it is highly improbable
that the U.S. strategic forces would ever be ordered to launch a first
strike against targets in the Soviet Union in response to a conven-
tional invasion of Western Europe. Indeed, this probability has been
close to zero for at least twenty-five years [as of 1983J."
He used the point to advance the cause he had been active in for most
of those 25 years, including a stint as a major advisor to then Secretary
of Defense McNamara, raising the threshold by increasing conven-
tional capabilities.
Kaufmann's expressed doubt about the use of strategic weapons
exemplifies a belief likely to evoke the European Couplers' worst fears,
and few of the American Maintainers would go that far. Nonetheless,
it is not very surprising that a respected American analyst can make a
statement potentially so shocking to West Europeans; the interpreta-
tions of the link remain very different on the two sides of the Atlantic.
An American view (by Washington defense analyst Leon Sloss) of the
European view highlights the contrast:
Under the vague and sufficiently ambiguous formulation of Flexible
Response, we witnessed the emergence of two distinct and, to a
degree, contradictory objectives. Very briefly, the U.S. wants
manoeuvring room and options, while Europe wants to avoid think-
ing about a prolonged conventional war or limited nuclear exchanges
at the theatre level by threatening a much bigger war which would
entail the total destruction of Europe, the Soviet Union and the
United States. If the only war is a general holocaust-so goes Euro-
pean reasoning-then there will be no war. From this vantage point,
U.S. ground troops and U.S. theatre nuclear forces ... would not be
a "firebreak" as the U.S. envisaged. Rather they would be the "fuse"
which would ignite the strategic arsenals immediately.... All this is
highly dangerous in today's environment.
2
The question here is not whether Sloss's analysis of the West Euro-
peans is correct; it represents a common Maintainer view of the
Couplers. The Maintainers' primarily military thinking about the link
is lost on many of the European Couplers; the Couplers' primarily
political thinking about the U.S. commitment-the political side of the
same issue--is held in contempt by many of the American Maintainers.
In the view of many of the Maintainers as well as the Couplers, the
whole thing has been exacerbated over time by the onset of "strategic
parity." Sloss continues his argument on the danger of "today's [1985]
environment":
"William W. Kaufmann, "Nuclear Deterrence in Central Europe," in Steinbruner
and Segal, p. 29.
1
2
Leon Slos, "The Roles of Strategic and Theatre Nuclear Forces in NATO Strategyr
Part II," in International Institute for Strategic Studies, pp. 61-62.
II
109
The enormous shift in the overall strategic balance of the last 20
years has had different consequences for the U.S. and for NATO
Europe. While U.S. strategic forces have been able to maintain a
rough parity with their Soviet counterparts, the same forces cannot
be deemed equally able to buttress the U.S. commitment to a NATO
strategy which implies first use of nuclear weapons to deter a conven-
tional attack. And yet this is still the essence of NATO strategy and
of the official role assigned to U.S. nuclear weapons."
3
In was in this context of a strategic balance perceived to be
deteriorating that INF was proposed in the late 1970s and introduced
in the early 1980s. The issue to the West Europeans was less the level
of the conventional-nuclear threshold than it was the width of any gap
in the chain of Flexible Response that led from conventional defense to
the American strategic deterrent. If the failure of conventional defense
led to the use of short-range nuclear weapons in Western Europe, the
lack of an intermediate-range force might allow a pause after the West
was devastated but before the homeland of the Soviet Union was
involved. And if the Soviets were to foresee such a pause, this might
bring about a failure to deter their initial conventional attack.
Americans were more inclined to describe the gap in military terms.
General Rogers, for example, described INF's role in NATO strategy:
NATO decided to deploy land-based long-range I.N.F. missiles in
1979 to fill a gap in our spectrum of deterrence. The gap existed
because American F-111 aircraft based in Britain were then the last
remaining part of the theater nuclear system that could reach Soviet
soil, provided the aircraft could penetrate Warsaw Pact air defenses.
The fact that the Russians began deploying SS-20 missiles in 1977
made the NATO decision more urgent.
14
The political-military issue raised by some Maintainers opposed to
INF is whether the location of the missile launchers or their participa-
tion in the "theater nuclear system" (given that the president of the
United States must release them to the theater commander before he
can use them) make a difference for Flexible Response or anything
else. Jonathan Dean of the Union of Concerned Scientists expresses
doubts:
The decision of an American president as to whether to respond to
an overwhelming Soviet conventional attack on Europe... with
nuclear weapons would not depend solely on the pattern of deploy-
ment of U.S. missiles in Europe. Rather, such a decision would
depend primarily on the president's assessment of the overall
13
Ibid., p. 63.
14
Bernard W. Rogers, "Why Compromise Our Deterrent Strength in Europe," New
York Times, June 28, 1987, p. E25.
r.
110
situation at the time.... The presence or absence of land-based
American missiles deployed in continental Europe would be a second-
ary factor in this decision-and for that matter, in its execution;
many other American delivery systems are available for the pur-
pose.
15
Neither Rogers' "gap in our spectrum of deterrence" nor Dean's
doubts about this gap take up the question of what would be done with
nuclear weapons if deterrence were to fail. The actual fighting of a
nuclear war in Europe is not much discussed, at least not on the open
record. Wohlstetter, however, together with his colleague Richard
Brody, does build several scenarios to illustrate the point that NATO
must pay attention to the detail of localized nuclear warfare rather
than throwing up its hands in the belief that such combat would mean
the destruction of civilization in the major population centers of the
old continent. Using as an illustration "contingencies involving a
Soviet invasion of northwest Iran leading to the Gulf," and the con-
comitant "possibility that the Soviets might use nuclear weapons selec-
tively to eliminate unexpected obstacles to such an invasion," they sug-
gest that:
The foregoing scenario offers a good example running counter to the
conventional wisdom that the Soviets could not use nuclear weapons
to accomplish military objectives of importance to them and to the
NATO nuclear powers without doing so much damage to Western
population centers that the NATO nuclear powers would have no
stake in exercising prudence and control if they used nuclear
weapons in response.
16
And although the threat is more likely on the periphery, it is not
absent from the Central front in Europe:
Even Soviet nuclear strikes during an invasion through the center of
Western Europe, if directed selectively only at military targets criti-
cal for the invasion, could confine damage to these targets much
more extensively than is generally recognized. ... Precisely delivered
air bursts could destroy aircraft on main operating bases in Britain,
France, and the Federal Republic. The collateral fatalities might be
in the high tens of thousands. That would be an enormous disaster.
But far less than the total destruction of Western European cities.
And European leaders might anticipate that as the consequence of
'
5
Jonathan Dean, "Military Security in Europe," Foreign Affair, Autumn 1987,
pp. 26-27.
'sAlbert Wohiatetter and Richard Brody, "Continuing Control as a Requirement for
Deterring," in Ashton B. Carter, John D. Steinbruner, and Charles A. Zraket (se),
Mwann Nuclear Operations, The Brookings Institution, Washington, D.C., 1987,
p. 159.
- - mm lmm rol m ireram
mmm memmm
~...-.-................................
i
ZZ1
their own use of nuclear weapons if the expected nuclear destruction
were to get out of control.
7
As part of his advocacy of controlled Western nuclear options to use
in (or deter) scenarios like this, Wohlstetter is a strong advocate of
SDI. Among most European Couplers, SDI "is seen... as destabiliz-
ing and decoupling" in Briton Phil Williams's words, but Wohlstetter
contends that this view is based on misunderstanding. He uses a
French publication to put his pro-SDI argument into NATO terms:
Certain technicians favorable to President Reagan's Strategic
Defense Initiative... have envisaged Soviet attacks which utilize
30,000 warheads ... all directed against cities in an attack mounted
as a total surprise. And they have given priority to the not very
obvious objective of intercepting all the warheads used in such an
absurd attack. It is more plausible, if the Soviets attack, that they
will use their ballistic missiles to obtain a greater probability of
destroying military obstacles (in the United States or Europe) in the
way of their invasion. Faced with this menace, a more modest
defense against ballistic missiles could be one of the effective ele-
ments of a solid Alliance posture, which would also have to include
the offensive capacity to respond selectively against Warsaw Pact
targets, including those in the USSR.... In this way, it would assist
in deterring the Soviet attack.
18
Wohlstetter's statement comparing the "30,000 warheads" to "more
modest" interpretations of the demands on SDI helps explain why, on
this even more than on other issues, West Europeans and Americans
misunderstand each other. It is because Americans confuse the argu-
ments in their own SDI debate. "Certain technicians" in Wohlstetter's
words, but President Reagan also, talk about SDI as a universal hard-
shell defense against all incoming ballistic missiles. Most military
analysts dismiss this kind of defense as a dream, but some, like
Wohlstetter, favor SDI for its role as part of a counterforce deterrent
against a range of Soviet attacks against Europe as well as the United
States. Some Europeans doubt the benefits they are to receive from
this modest defense and accept the worst possible interpretation:
President Reagan comes across louder than Wohlstetter, and these
Europeans believe that he really wants and can get his full hard-shell
defense for the United States; but they doubt that he is really very
interested in getting them one. Hence, they see SDI as part of Ameri-
can decoupling, a retreat to a happy life under the shell, with all wars
confined to Europe.
1
7
Ibid., p. 161.
1
8Albert Wohlstetter, "Au-deli de Is strategie du pire," Commentaire, Winter
1986-1986, p. 1013.
.. '..
.allm l sir ',A
112
By no means all Maintainers agree with Wohlstetter on the need for
SDI or for "a counterforce deterrent against a range of Soviet attacks;"
nor do they agree with Sloss on other effects of the onset of strategic
parity. Kaufmann's suggestion that the probability of an American
strategic nuclear strike in response to a conventional Soviet attack on
Western Europe "has been close to zero for at least twenty-five years"
implies that the shift to parity has been largely irrelevant for NATO
deterrence and defense; things have been the same since the 1950s.
And Bundy's existential statement that "What keeps the peace in
Europe then, is the whole range of consequences that aggression would
entail"
i
" contains no hint that he believes parity has changed that
range in any important way.
It does not take existentialism to worry about the European recep-
tion of SDI. American opponents have been concerned about its effect
on the Alliance. According to Stanford Professors Sydney Drell, Philip
Farley, and David Holloway:
The prospect of revival of ABM deployments thus brings Western
Europe not reassurance, but uncertainties and perhaps greater
dangers should it come about. In the short-term, American interest
in ABM exacerbates other concerns-the American confrontational
approach to the Soviet Union, an arms buildup which many see as
seeking military superiority and a nuclear war fighting capacity, and
a readiness to use military power and a scorn for negotiations and
political processes.
20
European discomfort is neither causal nor central to their case against
SDI, but the Drell-Farley-Holloway statement is one of many trans-
atlantic resonances heard among the Maintainers, arguments based on
the need to reconcile and soothe our allies to preserve the Alliance.
The European version discussed in the previous section was the will-
ingness of many Couplers to try to placate the Americans by agreeing,
in principle at least, to the need for stronger conventional capabilities,
even though these Europeans did not really want to diminish deter-
rence by decreasing the likelihood of escalation to the nuclear level.
Nor is opposition to SDI among the Maintainers based on resonance
alone. James Thomson of RAND questions both the president's and
Wohlstetter's versions on military grounds:
1
NcGeorge Bundy, "The Bishops and the Bomb," New York Review of Books, June
16, 1983, p. 6. This was the article where Bundy first used the phrase "existential deter-
rence."
2Sidney D. Drell, Philip J. Farley, and David Holloway, The Reagan Strategic
Defense Initiative: A Technical, Political, and Arms Control Assessment, Stanford Univer-
sity Press, 1984, p. 76.
__ __
-- i
113
The SDI was supposed to have ushered in a new era, based on a con-
cept of deterrence in which nuclear offensive threats would have
played little if any role.... In the face of technological uncertain-
ties, and perhaps European political objections, the U.S. administra-
tion appears to be scaling back its concept towards (or at least com-
plementing it with) a concept in which the deployed SDI would con-
tribute to deterrence by reducing the vulnerability of critical Western
military assets.... But at the present time there are many open
questions about the feasibility of this concept, as well as about the
more ambitious original concept.
2 1
How then do Maintainers hope to raise the threshold? Most of the
proposals call for increased conventional capabilities discussed below.
One set, however, centers on the No-First-Use discussion by Bundy,
Kennan, McNamara, and Smith. In spite of the fears their initial article
created among many West Europeans, it does fall short of a firm propo-
sal. And the most thoroughly thought through of related proposals-by
Morton Halperin, a member of the ten who signed the longer follow-on
article but not of the original four-steers around No First Use as such.
Halperin stresses instead the complete separation of nuclear "devices"
and their stigmatization as being completely inappropriate as weapons of
war.
[What] I am suggesting is not, strictly speaking, a no-first-use policy
for Europe. It is a somewhat different proposal--one that focuses
not on a public promise never to use nuclear weapons first, but
rather on the forces and operational plans for nuclear and conven-
tional weapons in Europe. If nuclear devices were not treated as
weapons, NATO's conventional military forces would be completely
separated from the specialized units designed to deliver nuclear
explosive devices should the political leadership of the Alliance ever
decide to employ them.... The nuclear force would retain the capa-
bility to be used first, and it could be employed at the direction of
the president of the United States in consultation with other NATO
allies. However, NATO would no longer threaten first use, and mili-
tary planning would be based on the assumption that NATO would
not initiate the use of nuclear weapons.n
The distance of Halperin's proposal from some current military think-
ing is illustrated by a contrasting statement in a paper by five U.S. Army
analysts writing in the publication of the Army War College:
2
Jamm A. Thomson, "Strategic Choicer Their Roles in NATO's Defence Planning
and Force Modernization, Part I," in International Institute for Strategic Studies, Adel-
phi Paper 206, pp. 20-21.
Morton H. Halperin, Nucle Fa lacy: DispdeU the Myth of Nucle Stt , Bal-
linger, Cambridge, 1987, pp. 95-96.
, .. , , .' !.'. " ./. . '* ..
... .,. .. .::.... . _ . . . ., .. . .
'-, , ",.i ' -,; . , ,'
, ,,;. ,-.-,'-. - :'
a
114
NATO's conventional and nuclear capabilities are not separate enti-
ties, but synergistic components of an effective defense posture. One
cannot replace the other and major deficiencies in one cannot be
compensated for by improvements in the other.'
Although this provides a reasonable description of NATO's current
posture, it is a view seldom defended in the explicit debate, particularly
among Americans. Central to the argument of those who stress the link
and worry about the threshold-virtually all of the Maintainers-is the
"firebreak" between conventional and nuclear combat, a different meta-
phor for what might be termed the threshold with the door closed. A
firebreak is a forest space denuded of vegetation so that a fire cannot
cross it into the part of the forest that has not been burned; the meta-
phorical firebreak is to keep a conventional war from jumping the lines
and consuming civilization in a general nuclear war.
24
But for the West Europeans, a better metaphor might be the "fire
door" at the threshold; fire doors are not locked, because people might
have to escape through them. In this case, the people at greatest risk are
the Germans. The American Four recognize German needs and fears as
the potential Achilles heel of No First Use and as the key issue to be
examined in their proposed study:
In such an exploration, the role of the Federal Republic of Germany
must be central. Americans too easily forget what the people of the
Federal Republic never can: that their position is triply exposed in a
fashion unique among the large industrial democracies. They do not
have nuclear weapons; they share a long common border with the
Soviet empire; in any conflict on the central front, their land would
be the first battlefield... Having decisively rejected a policy of neu-
trality, the Federal Republic has necessarily relied on the nuclear
protection of the United States, and we Americans should recognize
that this relationship is not a favor we are doing our German friends,
but the best available solution of a common problem....
A policy of no-first-use would not and should not imply an abandon-
ment of this extraordinary guarantee-only its redefinition. It would
still be necessary to be ready to reply with American nuclear weapons
to any nuclear attack on the Federal Republic, and this commitment
would in itself be sufficiently demanding to constitute a powerful
"Boyd Sutton, John X. Landry, Malcolm B. Armstrong, Howell M. Estes, and
Wesley K. Clark, "Strategic and Doctrinal Implications of Deep Attack Concepts for the
Defense of Central Europe," in Keith A. Dunn and William 0. Staudenmaier (eds.), MiWi-
tary Statee in Thmnition, U.S. Army War College, Carlisle Barracks, P., 1983, p. 78.
"The firebreak concept has existed since nuclear weapons wen first discussed pub-
licly It was formalized by Thomas Schelling in The Statv of Confer, Harvard
University Press, Cambridge, 1960, Appendix A.
i " "
I
115
demonstration that a policy of no-first-use would represent no aban-
donment of our German ally.'
Again resonances, undoubtedly heart-felt ones.
Few Maintainers, aside from the ten including Bundy and McNamara
who signed the follow-up article, take No First Use very seriously, even
as a study proposal. One reason is resonance to the strong negative reac-
tion from European Couplers. Even more important is the unlikelihood
of increasing conventional capabilities enough to support it, a need the
Four explicitly recognized. No First Use and related proposals, like
Halperin's, depend on either an increase of conventional capabilities or
an assessment that they are already sufficiently balanced. This is also
true for virtually any means of raising the threshold, in order to work,
they depend on conventional capabilities-improved, reassesed, or
rebalanced through arms control. Without such improvements or
reassessments, the Maintainer debate over the link and the threshold,
although central, is also rather theoretical, and the five Army officers'
description of the synergistic link between conventional and nuclear
capabilities will remain an accurate description of current reality.
Conventional Weapons
Senator Nunn's words, quoted at the head of this section, "The reason
we need to improve conventional deterrence is that the continued reli-
ance on the early use of nuclear weapons is diametrically opposed to the
national security interests of this country and the security interests of
our Western European allies," provide the central theme for the Main-
tainers' consideration of conventional weapons. The better we can
defend conventionally, the higher the threshold, the less likely we will
face the nuclear decision and, indeed, for the Maintainers more unani-
mously than the European Couplers, the stronger the deterrence of
Soviet conventional aggression.
A few Maintainers contend that we are really in pretty good shape
even now. Journalist Fred Kaplan sets up the standard view that "the
Russians... have an overwhelming advantage in conventional weapons,"
and then goes on to claim disagreement by Kaufmann and others,
who conclude that the view is simply wrong, at least highly exag-
gerated. "It's one of the great hoary myths of all time," says William
Kauf .... "I'm perfectly willing to say the balance of forces
isn't as good as I would like.... But it's not nearly as bad as a lot
25Bundy et aL., 1982, pp. 758-759.
n i-l iir'mil um =..
116
of people say, and the problems that are there aren't that big a deal
to fix"
2
Kaufmann has long been associated with this position. His own highly
detailed written analysis, however, was more carefully hedged and indi-
cated what he meant by "problems that... aren't that big a deal to fix":
[The] Pact's ground forces dwarf those of NATO in the number of
divisions, tanks, armored fighting vehicles, and artillery pieces. If
these numbers are approximately correct, what reasons exist for
questioning the ability of the Pact to conquer NATO in a conven-
tional war and to do so with great dispatch? One reason, quite sim-
ply, is that what are known as static comparisons, while not
irrelevant to a military analysis, are only one factor among the many
that must be taken into account.... Soviet strategists ... may have
little choice but to seek quick results through blitzkrieg tactics. Cer-
tainly the ground forces as presently constituted are not well suited
to extended campaigns of offense or defense.
27
Kaufmann is more upbeat than most of those who assess NATO's
ability to resist a conventional attack conventionally. It may be a case of
half-full or half-empty, but the more frequent view is that expressed by
Senator William Roth (Rep., Del.), co-sponsor of the Nunn Amendment:
The current status of NATO's conventional defenses insures that, in
the event of war, we, the NATO alliance, will be obliged to escalate
quickly to the nuclear level. According to General Rogers, such esca-
lation should be conceived in terms of days, not weeks.O
Roth's statement does not necessarily contradict Kaufmann's analysis.
The military analyst says we need some fixes, but even without them we
may well have enough strength to make the Soviets think hard about
their prospects at the conventional level, and probably to deter them; the
Senator's remarks suggest that without fixes, in a situation where the
* Warsaw Pact is not deterred and does attack, our conventional defenses
are likely to crack quickly.
* Both Kaufmann's analysis and the Senate debate stem from the first
half of the 1980s, however. The Alliance has not stood still since then,
but how much progress has been made is conjectural. Senator Carl Levin
(Dem., Mich.), for example, had backed the 1984 Nunn Amendment to
force the improvement of NATO conventional defenses; but in 1988, as
Chairman of the Subcommittee on Conventional Forces and Alliance
SFed Kapla. "Analystc.: Soviet Force in Europe Exserated," Boston Globe, April
20, 1987, p. 2.
2Wiliam W. Kaufmann, "Nonnuclear Deterrence," in Steinbruner and Sigsl,
pp. 44-5M
2%8enator William Roth, Conreuiona Record, Senate, June 20, 1964, p. 87728
-- - - -- :
-'w
II
iI
117
Defense, he released a report pointing out the uncertainties surrounding
any measurement of conventional strength, and then stated as his own
view- "I believe an uneasy conventional balance exists today in Europe."
Uneasy as it was, he thought that the balance should suffice to deter
Soviet conventional attack.
3
Even so, the conventional belief about the conventional balance, not
necessarily in contradition to Levin's view, is that NATO remains
dangerously deficient. Part of the reason lies in the rubber stamp "In
this perilous moment in the history of the alliance;" NATO's officials
and analysts have always felt this way about conventional defense in the
years since Lisbon. And part is explained by General Rogers' 1987 state-
ment. "NATO has gotten stronger every year, because of commitments
that have been met, but when one looks at the gap between our force
capabilities and those of the Soviet Union and the Warsaw Pact, you find
that the gap has widened in every area of measurement we have."' This
throws into question the meaning of "getting stronger," but it describes a
standard belief.
The primary problem, according to General Rogers is:
our inability to sustain our forces adequately with trained manpower,
ammunition and war reserve materiel. This major deficiency-lack
of sustainability-is generally ignored by those persons who maintain
that NATO can succeed conventionally. The problem is not that our
forces will not perform admirably at the General Defensive Positions
(GDP) (if appropriate advantage has been taken of warning times);
they will. The problem is that they cannot fight long enough through
lack of adequate sustainment.
31
In recent years at least, lack of sustainability has been widely per-
ceived as NATO's greatest weakness. Greater allied contributions to
sustainability by increasing the stock of munitions available was the first
of the two substantive demands of the Nunn Amendment (in addition to
the financial demand of annual increases in defense spending, the
burden-sharing issue, which will be discussed below). The second
demand was for greater European support for U.S. tactical air reinforce-
ment. Were the two not achieved according to numerical criteria speci-
fied in the Amendment, 90,000 U.S. troops (somewhat less than one-
U.8. Senator Carl Levin press release, announcing his report, Bowu the Ban
Cout Realtcaly Am ing Oe Conventional Baance in Burope, Senate Subcommittee
on Conventional Forces and Alliance Defens, Washington, D.C., January 20, 198&
3'General Bernard Ropr in conversation Ian Davidson," transcript of a recorded
documentary, British Broadcasting Corporation, London, May 13, 1987, p. 14.
3
1
plp% "NATO's StrateW. An Undervalued Currency," p. 6.
.. . . ...
118
third of the total) were to be withdrawn from Europe in three annual
increments.
32
In addition to these enforceable requirements, the bill listed as specific
needs to fill specific gaps in conventional capabilities: improvements in
air base defenses; increased trained manpower levels, particularly
reserves; increasing war reserve material, improvements in
mine/countermine capability; and improvements in offensive counter air
capability.
33
The amendment did not pass. It came close, but Senator
Nunn did not press it after 1984. Three years later, he reported some
improvement, but remained an armed agnostic:
Although signs of progress in this area are encouraging, we must
recognize that much remains to be done if NATO is actually to meet
the goals it has set for itself. NATO has less than a superb record in
following through on its force commitments, so I am in a sense still
watching and waiting to see if my amendment should remain on the
shelf.
34
Each authority has his own set of NATO shortfalls, each time frame
has its own. Kaufmann's come close to those of the Nunn Amendment,
35
as do those of three retired officers and one civilian expert who provided
specific proposals in 1985 for a European Security Study sponsored by
the American Academy of Arts and Sciences.
36
A year later, Washington
analyst Philip Karber termed "marginal" with an "ominous trend"
NATO's anti-armor capabilities and its ability to strike deep i la
FOFA.
37
In 1987, Anthony Cordesman of the Armed Forces Journal
paralleled Karber on NATO anti-armor deficiencies and long-distance
strike capability, but also listed: maldeployment among national sectors
on the central front; air and tactical missile defense capability; Naval
forces and anti-submarine warfare; lines of communication, logistics,
munitions, and war reserves (although reporting recent progress); and
32
The Nunn Amendment, Congressional Record, Senate, June 20, 1984, p. S7721.
3Ibid.
34
Senator Sam Nunn, Speech to the DMS Symposium on Industrial Cooperation
within NATO, Brussels, April 13, 1987, p. 7.
35
Kaufmann, pp. 44-58.
S
30
General Andrew J. Goodpaster, General Franz-Joseph Schulze, Air Chief Marshall
Sir Alasdair Steedman, and Dr. William J. Perry, Strengthening Conventional Deterrence
in Europe: A Program for the 1980s, The European Security Study Report of the Special
Panel, Westview Press, Boulder, 1985, pp. rv-xvi. Although both the overall group and
the panel of experts are European-American, the study comes up in the Maintainer sec-
tion because it was American-sponsored,
37
Philip A. Karber, "NATO Doctrine and NATO Operational Priorities: The Central
Front and the Flanks: Part I," in International Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi
Paper 207, table p. 16.
L _ - . .
119
C31.38 And Defense Secretary Weinberger chose to stress the "disadvan-
tage in the capability to generate adequately trained and equipped
reserves quickly to stop a Warsaw Pact breakthrough along the East.
West Border."M
Underlying it all is a general belief among Maintainers that it cer-
tainly would be nice to move a little way toward matching Warsaw Pact
numbers in manpower and weapons, but that it simply is not going to
happen. Thomson quotes another analyst: "Andrew Hamilton provides
a rationale for an additional 20-45 equivalent heavy combat divisions
which are stronger divisions than the average NATO division today,"
4
0
and without endorsing anything that substantial, then goes on to set
aside the possibility for any such change: "In any case, conventional
deterrence would require substantial force growth. That simply is not in
the cards."
4
' Thomson's own modest recommendations stress improve-
ments in the NATO planning process as being at least as important as
many of the proposed substantive fixes.
The point is not the disagreements among the officials and analysts;
there is rather more agreement on specific deficiencies than one might
expect. Rather, what is important here is the strong consensus that
several things are wrong, and at least some of them must be fixed if we
are to mount a conventional defense that is either going to stymie War-
saw Pact aggression or raise the threshold for the decision to go nuclear.
The consensus includes such optimists as Kaufmann and Senator Levin.
If major conventional improvements are not in the cards, one reason
lies in the questions: How much will it cost to fix these things? Will such
sums be forthcoming? Who is to pay? Like the needs, these are classical
issues dating back to Lisbon. The debate over burden-sharing will be
discussed in the section on the U.S. Commitment. As for 'How much?"
the Nunn Amendment demanded a 3 percent per year increase, which
was the ante agreed to by the NATO membership under Carter adminis-
tration prodding in 1977, but hardly adhered to religiously thereafter. In
1982, General Rogers upped it a bit, asking a 4 percent increase per year
for six years.
42
The Nunn requirement can be estimated at slightly below $10 billion a
j reAnthony H. Cordesman, "Alliance Requirements and the Need for Conventional
Forme Improvements," in James Thomson and Uwe Nerlich (e&.), Conventional Arm.
Control and the Security of Europe, Weaeview Press, Boulder, 1988
39Ca0par W. Weinberger, "Facing Reality on NATO Security," Los Arneles Timue,
September 13, 1987, Part V, p. 5.
'From Andrew Hamilton, "Redressing the Conventional Balance: NATO'. Reerve
Military Manpower," International Security, Summer 1985.
4
1
Thomaon, "Strategic Choices," p. 21.
4
Bernard W. Rogers, "The Atlantic Alliance: Preecriptiona for a Difficult Dcade,"
Foreign Afflairs, Summer 1982, p. 116.
120
year, the Rogers request at slightly more than $10 billion." Other propo-
sae for other packages price out at anywhere from $5 to $20 billion.
None of these costing efforts is very meaningful, however. When Carter
and Nunn's 3 percent a year has been reached only sporadically, and
Rogers' 4 percent not at all, there seems little reason to expend major
efforts to price out what is really needed. The Alliance has known about
and debated its deficiencies for 35 years, and for that length of time it has
estimated what it would cost to fill the deficiencies, and neither the debates
nor the estimates have been taken seriously enough for anyone to put up a
major portion of the funds.
Nor does any Maintainer believe that substantial increases are more
likely now than in the past. Thomson's appraisal of why "it is not in the
cards," in his words, would receive little dissent:
The money and manpower will not be available, especially in Europe,
which would have to contribute the lion's share of the resources
needed for conventional deterrence. Although NATO nations report-
edly did better in meeting the 3 percent real growth goal in 1984 than
in the previous few years, the long-term trend in Europe is toward
tighter defence budgets, including in Britain and Germany, the Euro-
pean countries with the largest defence efforts.... Prospects are
slim to zero that Europe's continued economic stagnation will be
ended by an extended period of great economic growth that would
permit decisive increases in defence efforts. In any case, the second
factor would militate against the defence sector becoming the benefi-
ciary of economic gains. Despite all the efforts of the United States
and of their own political leaders to "educate" them, European pub-
lics do not feel an imminent threat to their survival. Only an
extended period of substantially increased East-West tensions,
clearly the fault of the USSR, is likely to change the situation."
Since this 1986 writing, the Gramm-Rudman budget limitations have
closed down what little chance there might have been of "decisive
increases" on the part of the United States, Europe has not begun an
"extended period of economic growth," and the Reykjavik meeting and
the zero-zero agreement, whatever their ultimate effects on the conven-
tional balance, do not presage any "extended period of substantial East-
West tensions."
Lacking the political or economic support to move straight ahead
toward substantially stronger conventional capabilities, the Maintainers
have been increasingly attracted to the technological and strategic de-
vices that many European Couplers have questioned. They are also
questioned by some Maintainers, but the support-to-skepticism ratio is
uThis is based on Kaufmann's 1983 esmate of total NATO spending of $262 bil.
lion a year (Kaufmann, p. 79), raised to $300 billion for subsequent inflation.
"Thomson, "Strstegi Choices," pp. 21-23.
z t.
121
higher west of the Atlantic. The debate over strategic expedients has a
history going back almost as far as the other issues raised by the conven-
tional balance; even the technological fixes have been discussed for
nearly twenty years.
Richard DeLauer, former Under Secretary of Defense for Research
and Engineering, believes that the time has come for the "emerging tech-
nologies" to play a major role in righting the conventional balance:
The new technologies have... now reached the point where their
insertion into the military inventory of the NATO forces is readily at
hand. It is only by the vigorous pursuit of these technologies and the
related advanced warfare concepts that the Alliance can be expected
to overcome the vast numerical superiority enjoyed by the Warsaw
Pact forces.*
The enthusiasm is not limited to DeLauer, who had an official and
professional responsibility for introducing the new technologies into the
U.S. defense establishment. With the exception of Kaufmann, each of
the authorities quoted above on the deficiencies of NATO's conventional
capabilities included the new technologies as a significant part of the
solution; for the four experts of the European Security Study, and for
Cordesman, the technological possibilities were central.
Washington defense analyst and former Army officer Steven Canby,
however, expresses deep doubts about the new technologies, going far
beyond the issues of timing and net contribution expressed by the Euro-
pean skeptics and some Maintainers as well:
America's weapons have become too costly and too difficult to main-
tain because of systemic problems in the way they are designed and
procured. Many are militarily questionable.... America designs its
weapons for engineers and the Soviets design theirs for soldiers....
Our defense establishment is so fascinated by technology and one-
on-one duels that it loses sight of real combat, and often of the laws
of physics. Too many of our new systems are overrefined and unable
to operate against adaptive opponents in unpredictable
environments-the conditions that make war as much art as sci-
ence
. 6
Based on this philosophy, Canby mounts a heavy attack on SHAPE's
FOFA strategy. The strategy itself is described by Sutton, Landry,
Armstrong, Estes, and Clark (the five Army analysts quoted above with
regard to conventional-nuclear force integration):
'Richard D. DeLauer, "Emerging Technologies and their Impact on the Conventional
Deterrent," in Pierre, The Convenial Defense of Europe, pp. 42-44.
'Steven L. Canby, "High-Tech, High-Fail Defense," Los Angeles Tines, September
16, 1985, Part II, p. 5.
tI
m~li h a N_ i , |-
122
The SHAPE concept seeks to locate and track Warsaw Pact forces
during their entire process of deployment, from garrison to battlefield
commitment, and to attack them when and where they are most
vulnerable. The concept aims at exploiting particularly critical
enemy vulnerabilities in the reinforcement process, the rigidity of his
planning for an echeloned offense, the density of forces along limited
attack routes, and critical transportation facilities.
17
Canby attacks it from all directions:
Emerging technologies applied to the deep attack of Follow-on Forces
(FOFA) cannot be effective, in principle or practice. FOFA is a con-
cept beyond the capabilities of technology. Its infeasibility tran-
scends the many limitations of the specific equipment proposed. It is
necessarily a preprogrammed, deterministic system. Such systems
cannot operate in uncongenial, adaptative and unpredictable environ-
ment....
[Tihe new technologies fail on four counts: Technology can be a
trap; The Soviet operational method has been incorrectly analysed,
Technical and operational feasibility are not synonymous; Counter-
measures exist....
The concept rests on a survivable "top-down" command, control and
communications system, plus detailed pre-planning and timing of
reinforcements....
For the deep attack technologies, five problems exist: Cost; Equip-
ment Reliability; Equipment vulnerability; System complexity;,
Flawed logic.'
It seems probable that Canby's strictures would extend slightly less
strongly to the Army's AirLand Battle, which the five Army analysts
compare to SHAPE's FOFA. Both are "deep battle" concepts, depending
on air strikes well behind the immediate area of ground combat, but Air-
Land Battle is less "top-down" than FOFA and might thus meet Canby's
objections better:
AirLand Battle thrives on the early allocation of airpower to support
the ground commander, a process which reduces the extent of cen-
tralized control and application; the SHAPE concept, however, plans
for more traditional use of arpwer through centralized air allocation
and application theater-wide.
Jonathan Dean points out that AirLand "could involve use of nuclear
as well as conventional weapons in strikes deep into Warsaw Pact
47SUtton et al., p. 66.
ftven L. Canby, "New Conventional Force Technology and the NATO-Warmw
Pact Balance: Part I," in International Institute for Strategic Studies, New Techolog
and Western Security Pokcy Part II, Adelphi Paper 198, London, pp. 7-13.
498-tton et al., p. 76.
In II ev:LCab, Nw ovntoalFr eI holg and th ~ullNilAO-Warmn ulsamw I mlo~ m
123
territory in response to Pact attack," and therefore terms FOFA "less
far-reaching." He also says that although FOFA calls for initial conven-
tional deep strikes, "for the most part, their intended range would be
considerably less than in the Air-Land Battle concept-100 kilometers or
less.
"
' In any case, Dean opposes both strategies: "Although they may
be conceived by their supporters as a purely defensive response to possi-
ble Warsaw Pact attack, if deployed in large numbers, these weapons can
be used for attack."
5
'
The third in the triad of deep strategies is the "counteroffensive" of
Samuel Huntington, Director of the Harvard Center for International
Affairs. This differs from the other two in that it contemplates a distinct
ground offensive against the East, with objectives that are more political
than the other two purely military designs, and with the explicit intent to
threaten the Soviets' East European bloc.
A strategy of conventional retaliation in the form of a prompt offen-
sive into Eastern Europe would help to deter Soviet military action
against Western Europe.... The logical extension of the forward
defense concept is to move the locus of battle eastward into East
Germany and Czechoslovakia.... To date the Soviets have been
free to concentrate all their planning and forces on retaliatory moves
into West Germany. A Western retaliatory strategy would compel
them to reallocate forces and resources to the defense of their satel-
lites and thus to weaken their offensive thrust.
5 2
As has been discussed, the Huntington concept upsets many European
Couplers on political grounds. Keith Dunn of the U.S. National Defense
University and William Staudenmaier of the Army War College object to
the strategy on military grounds as well:
Whether considered in terms of suitability, feasibility, flexibility or
acceptability, the concept of a conventional retaliatory offensive does
not appear to offer a credible alternative to NATO's current strategy.
As a war-fighting strategy it is unsuitable because it does not provide
a decisive use of military force.... Nor is it feasible.... [By]
neglecting to account for the Soviet second strategic echelon, it woe-
fully underestimates the allied force required to implement it.... In
terms of flexibility, the concept depends on the Warsaw Pact to
launch its invasion in a specific way that will play into NATO's
hands.
51
50Jonathan Dean, Watershed in Europe. Dismantling the East-West Military Confron.
tat/on, D.C. Heath, Lexington, Mass., 1987, pp. 63-U4.
511bid., p. 66.
"28amuel P. Huntington, "The Renewal of Strategy," in Samuel P. Huntington (9d),
The Str atei Imperative, Ballinger, Cambridge, 1982, pp. 21-23.
"Keith A. Dunn and William 0. Staudenmaier, "The Retaliatory Offensive and
Operational Realities in NATO," Surviva/, May/June 1985, p. 11&.
L . . . . . . . . .
1241
This is followed by a summary paragraph quoted, with emphasis, by Gen-
eral Rogers, the progenitor of the FOFA alternative, himself:
Besides, and possibly most importantly, if NATO were able to adopt
all the force structure changes [to which this SACEUR would add
-and sustainability needs-] that would be required to make the retali-
atory strategy work, there would be no need to change NATO's stra-
tegy. Defence and deterrence would be ensured without the need to
endorse a politically and operationally risky course."
In sum, each of the three forward strategies has its advocates among
the Maintainers, and each receives far more detailed military analysis
than among the Couplers; but none commands a consensus. In case
NATO's conventional defenses were actually called upon to resist a Pact
attack, elements of FOFA in particular would probably be used, but in
their current and prospective states, none of the three alternatives is
viewed by any of the debaters as close to a complete substitute for the
current strategy or even a major strategic change. Nor does a consensus
view the emerging technologies themselves as bases for such a change,
although these do have their strong advocates.
The other end of the strategic spectrum, "Defensive Defense," is not
taken very seriously by the Maintainers. General Rogers disposes of it
quickly-
The concept is beset with inadequacies: it would leave the West
vulnerable to blackmail from the threat of overwhelming conven-
tional force, to say nothing of the nuclear threat; the concept pro-
vides no convincing deterrent to aggression; and it could take effect
primarily after NATO territory had been occupied. Finally, this con-
cept, with no means of ejecting the enemy from NATO territory, is
void of hope for our people.... Once in possession of NATO terri-
tory, it is unlikely that the Soviet Union could be persuaded to leave
by the very limited range of offensive options offered by the type of
forces associated with this concept.'
And Thomson relates it to another concept in a way calculated to make
both sides of the pair quite uncomfortable:
All the suggested alternatives [to current NATO strategy] have
greater military, technical or financial problems than the current
concept. This includes some of the most recent popular notions,
whether they be strategic defenses or their intellectual brother-
"defensive defenses.""
"Rogers, "NATO's Strategy. an Undervalued Currency," p. 14.
5"Ibid., p. 13.
"Jameo Thomson, "The Arms Control Challenge to the Alliance," Address to the
North Atlantic Asaembly in Plenary Session, Oslo, September 25, 1987, p. 3.
- ii :- ." ' '
i i ii i i []sin mia mas im H.
125
What the conventional force debate comes down to, then, is that all
the Maintainers stress a need for greater capabilities if the threshold is
to be raised (and almost all are anxious to raise it); they recognize the
economic and related constraints that make straight-line increases
impossible; some see a way out through more or less radical fixes; but no
such fix commands a consensus and perhaps not a majority. And their
Coupler partners on the other side of the Atlantic are much less
interested anyhow.
All of the Maintainers' conventional debate thus far examined, just as
virtually all of the Coupler's parallel debate, concerns the Central front.
The Americans, although sometimes concerned with the role of the
Northern flank in protecting the sea lanes to central Europe, seldom
bring it into explicit discussion, although Norwegian Defense Minister
and analyst Holst does get at least as much attention in the United
States as in central Europe.
One brief analysis of issues both north and south has been presented
by Karber. His general conclusion about the importance of the Northern
flank to NATO as a whole parallels Hoist's:
A successful defence in the North is a prerequisite for NATO's con-
ventional prospects in the Centre. This area is more than a flank. It
is the guardian of Europe's link to American reinforcement and sup-
ply.
57
And he provides an upbeat analysis of the Norwegian and allied efforts in
that country, but contrasts it with the southern part of the Northern
flank, where Danish efforts are weak and German defenses are diluted by
other demands on both naval and land forces.
5
M
So far as the Southern flank is concerned, he suggests that it too is
primarily a naval problem, with the issues here being as much political as
military, stressing particularly the problems raised by the Greek-Turkish
dispute.
5
0 These views, presented at the IISS annual meeting of 1985
were generally confirmed at the 1987 annual meeting in Barcelona, the
theme of which was the Mediterranean. In spite of all the political and
other problems, however, Robert O'Neill's conference summary reported
that: "The most important single observation of [the committee on
Mediterranean security) was that the balance of forces between NATO
and the Warsaw Pact in the Mediterranean favoured the West."00
5
7
Karbor,
p. 16.
5Ibid., pp. 18-19.
Ibid, p. 21.
wRobet O'NeiI, Concluding Remarka to the Twenty-Ninth Annual Confernce of
the International Institute for Strategic Studies, Barcelona, September 1987, p. 12.
126
The military issues on both flanks resemble watery reproductions of
the issues on the Central front, but they demand much less attention.
The political problems on the Southern flank are unique to that area.
What they share with the rest of NATO, however, is that the political
issues may well overwhelm military needs and strategies.
ALLIANCE POLITICAL ISSUES
The U.S. Commitment
Journalist Drew Middleton, long-since retired as military columnist
for the New York Times, wrote in 1987:
Should the United States lose Central America or the Middle East,
military survival would be difficult but far from impossible. The loss
of NATO Europe, on the other hand, would leave America virtually
without owerful allies and the many billions of dollars invested in
the
area.
I
This is the old-time religion. It reflects Dean Acheson's 1959 "The most
important objective today... is to hold together those sources of
%strength we possess. These sources are North America and Western
Europe." It is present in full evangelical strength in Senator Nunn's
1984 "we want to be part of NATO... we are going to continue to be part
of NATO" no matter what our European allies do, quoted at the head of
this section. It underlies the cautions expressed by many Maintainers,
exemplified by former Defense Secretary Schlesinger's "Therefore, all of
our public comments should be carefully gauged according to the realiza-
tion that the fundamental defense of Western freedom lies in preserving
the cohesion of the alliance."'
2
This section examines the Maintainers' restatement of the U.S. com-
mitment to NATO and the reasons for it; the resonance of their views as
they reflect and try to calm West European fears; "burden-sharing" as a
core issue; and various Maintainer proposals for restructuring the Alli-
ance and the American role in order to preserve both.
In spite of the fears of many European Couplers, the importance and
the preservation of the Alliance remain the central tenets of the Main-
tainers, and the Maintainers remain very much the majority of American
O
1
Drsw Middloton, "U.S. Is Too Faer for Miusile Pact with Soviet," Air Frm
Tima, July 6, 1987, p. 28.
RJamn Schlesinger, quoted by Senator William Cohen (Rep., Maine), Css~ional
BeeordL Senaft, June 20, I964, p. 87746.
ii
... , . , ". :] .. ,,. ;,., '., . .
i * (
debaters and American voters.' One underlying reason for this devotion
is suggested by Schlesinger: "Europeans are, in the view of Americans,
good people; thus they are deserving of our protection. That protection
does not arise out of a sense of Realpolitik."
6
'
Empathy does not make a strong political case for the spending of
hundreds of billions of dollars, however, so Ambassador to West Ger-
many Richard Burt continues to depend on Realpolitik in his defense
against both the Removers and those Maintainers who want to reduce
the size of American forces in NATO:
They are wrong. Maintaining a free, independent and democratic
Western Europe remains the pre-eminent strategic interest of the
United States. In global terms, the loss of Western Europe would be
as significant as the Chinese-Soviet split-with America on the losing
end.
Even though the Nunn Amendment did not pass, the 1984 debate
marked a trough in support for NATO. A few years later, the Congres-
sional commitment seemed stronger. In December of 1986, NATO
Ambassador Abshire reported that:
The good news for NATO is that a new partnership has been formed
with the Congress-after some Americans in the past had lost
patience with the Europeans never coming to grips with conventional
defense improvement. The new pro-NATO network feels that a new
attitude at NATO and in the European capitals has emerged, built
not only around the old-fashioned approach to arms cooperation of a
two-way street, but on a new coalition approach toward better return
on defense expenditures."
And in 1987, Senator Nunn, the leader among Americans who in
Abehire's phrase "had lost patience," used a few words quoted above to
express conditional satisfaction with NATO efforts since his 1984
amendment nearly passe& "signs of progress... are encouraging...
much remains to be done.... NATO has less than a superb record in fol-
lowing through." On the other side of Capitol Hill, the House of
Representatives in the spring of 1987 passed a resolution opposing reduc-
tion of U.S. troop levels in NATO.
0Surveys show that about two-thirds of the American electorate support NATO. The
residual included "undecided." as well as opponents.
"James R. Schlesinger, "An American Perspective," speech reprinted in Co'Wessional
Record, June 20, 1984, p. 87748.
G
5
,,ichard Burt, "Why American Forces Should Remain in Europe," Inenatona
Herald Tribune, March 25, 1987, p. 6 (reprinted from the Wahiwon Post).
"David M. Abshire, in Atlantic Institute for International Affairs, Mnqfv Ent.y
Into the 21st Centuy, Paris, 1966, p. 23.
128
This new warmth undoubtedly stemmed in part from increased Euro-
pean efforts, although, as suggested by Nunn, they still had a very long
way to go in 1987. Nonetheless, it may seem paradoxical that at the
same time that Reykjavik and zero-zero raised West European fears of
American abandonment to a crescendo, American Maintainers appeared
surer of the U.S. commitment than they had for some time.
Rather than paradox, it is cause and effect. Because the Maintainers
place the preservation of NATO near the top of their list of priorities,
they respond rapidly in resonance to West European views that seem to
threaten the Alliance: It is in the American interest to preserve the Ai-
ance; therefore it is in the American interest to satisfy the European
interests in the Alliance.
Georgetown University Professor Stephen Wrage, for example,
resonates with the Europeans against the Reagan administration:
Our actions set off the debate, yet now we are ignoring it. To the
Reagan administration, Europeans' concerns are inconvenient obsta-
cles in the drive toward and agreement with the Soviets. Reagan's
advisers calculate that any agreement, no matter what its conse-
quences for NATO, would be a foreign-policy triumph that wouldjput
the Iran-contra debacle behind them and help them finish strong.'
And Schlesinger, having served in the cabinet under both parties, is in a
position to resonate even more broadly: "Europeans, quite understan-
dably, have been irritated by what appeared to be the erratic weakness of
Jimmy Carter, and they have been almost equally irritated by what
appeared to be the erratic strength of President Reagan.
" 6
s And even
traditional conservative eminence William Buckley takes a stand 180
degrees away from neoconservatives Kristol and Krauss. They had
turned from Europe, he still resonated.
So Secretary of State George Shultz told the NATO commander-in-
chief to shut up about his objections to the INF agreement....
What General Rogers said... was that the projected swap means,
very simply, that our deterrent force in Europe is weakened....
That [leaves] us to contemplate this single point implicit in the pro-
jected deal, namely that its purpose is not military but political, and
that the advantages to be gained politically outweigh those lost mili-
tarily. On this point, General Rogers... tells us that many Euro-
pean leaders ruefully regret the treaty to which they are now commit-
ted but that they are "hoist on their own petard." ...
s
7
8tephen D. Wrap, "U.S. Finds Itself Dealt Out of European Debate," Los An ke
Times, August 26, 1987, Part II, p. 5.
Schlesinger, p. 87749.
man mn
u
laamn mm Ni lullInuml .a
mm
raiu nnmm m nu n In
129
Our allies are left in a bind, and it is dismaying to contemplate with
such icy detachment that, in the current controversy, Secretary
Shultz is Neville Chamberlain, General Rogers, Winston Churchill
Buckley does not supply a 1930s analog for Ronald Reagan.
7
0
Like Schlesinger's *Europeans... are good people," cited earlier, reso-
nance has its limits as a prop for policy. The major limit in the United
States is the feeling on the part of many Americans that the West Euro-
peans are letting us pay for their defense, either refusing to carry their
share or at least not volunteering to do so as long as "Uncle Sap (a pre
World War II isolationist epithet) is willing to pay it all. Although Sena-
tor Nunn avoided this theme in the Senate debate over his amendment,
stressing instead the need to reinforce conventional capabilities in order
to raise the threshold, many of his colleagues focused on "burden-
sharing." Senator Levin, for example, used several measures to estimate
European contributions to the common defense:
Despite their 1977 commitment to increase defense spending annu-
ally by 3 percent after excluding inflation [sic], our NATO allies had
an average 2.8-percent increase in real growth in their defense bud-
gets in 1981. In 1982, that average went down to 2.3 percent real
growth. In 1983 it declined to about 2 percent real growth. In 1984,
it is tentatively, projected that the average real growth for non-
United States NATO nations will be only between 1.2 and 1.7 per-
cent....
On a per capita basis, the United States far exceeds all its allies in
defense spending. We spent $819 per American citizen in
1982; ... our nearest ally-financially--was the United Kingdom,
which spend $467 per capita.... In 1982, we spent 6.5 percent of our
GDP [Gross Domestic Product] on defense. Other economically
strong allies spending far less were West Germany-3.4 percent; the
Netherlands-3.2 percent; Norway-3 percent; Denmark-2.5 per-
cent; and Canada-2.1 percent.
71
Nunn's tentative agreement that at least they're beginning to try
became more typical in subsequent years. Nonetheless, in 1987
Congresswoman Patricia Schroeder (Dem., Colo.) offered a bill similar to
the Nunn Amendment, putting it into the context of the balance-of-
payments deficit, which had become a major issue by that year:
'*William F. Buckley, Jr., "Generals Can Be Right," National Review, July 31, 1987,
. p.698.
VEdward VM?
7
1
8entor Carl Levin, Congrional Record, Senate, June 20, 1984, pp. 87768-87770.
1:%
180
Of the $300 billion the United States spends on defense, something
more than half, say, $150 billion, goes for NATO obligations Our
trade deficit is running at about $175 billion a year. What we are
spending to protect our allies is about the same amount by which we
are losing the trade war.7
Schroeder's effort was taken less seriously than Nunn's because she
lacked both his authority as senior Senate Democrat on defense and his
acknowledged expertise. And more generally, in spite of the trade prob-
lems of the late 1980s, post-Reykjavik resonance made the American
burden-sharing attack much weaker in 1987 than in 1984. General
Rogers, for example, without giving up his exhortation for more Alliance
conventional support all around, told an interviewer in 1987:
The fact is that those nations in Western Europe within this alliance
are not getting a just credit for the amount of the burden they do
share.... On average ... I find that the Western European nations
are bearing a fair share of the collective security burden but the fact
is, if we wish peace with freedom, we're going to have to spend more.
And I can tell you, if we accept these agreements ... go to both zero,
zero, zero, zero, levels, there's a major cost associated with that.7
Perhaps the best-hedged statement on burden-sharing is that
presented by New Republic editor Morton Kondracke:
The burden-sharing movement could lead to a stronger set of alli-
ances and a stronger U.S. economy-if conventional forces are built
up on our side or the Soviets can be induced to reduce theirs, and if
Japan can be induced to spend its surpluses on economic develop-
ment.
74
This will require sophisticated diplomacy on the part of the
United States. Unjudicious ally-bashing, however, will only help
Mikhail Gorbachev separate the United States from its friends.
75
For the short run, this might well command a substantial consensus
among the Maintainers, at least in their less cantankerous and political
moments. Over a longer period, however, the bottom line may be that
put forth by economist Charles Cooper, who was the Ford
administration's Assistant Secretary of the Treasury for International
Affairs. Cooper reflects that after the administration coming to power in
72
Patricia Schroeder, "Burt's Right on One Thing. Allies Must Pay More,* Interna-
tional Herald Tribwe, October 14, 1987, p. 4. (reprinted from the Washington Post).
7"General Bernard Rogers in conversation with Ian Davidson," p. 9.
74
Tha Japan theme frequently and the Third World economic development theme
occasionally have appeared in the burden-sharing debates analyzed here, but they have
been excluded from the analysis because they would take it off on tangents leading away
from the NATO debate as such. Another irony of 1987 was that fear of a transatlantic
trade war was muted somewhat when both sides of NATO joined in Japan-bashing.
75Morton M. Kondracke, "Make 'ea Pay," New Republic, October 12, 1987, p. 17.
, - . . .... . . -
131
1989 has shaken down, a reduction of the U.S. commitment to NATO
"seems to me almost inevitable. Some forty years on, the status quo in
Europe looks increasingly anachronistic and unstable as U.S. worldwide
and strategic commitments outstrip U.S. capacity to sustain them."
7T
The longer-run burden-sharing issue is also one of the roots of a
number of proposals for a much more thoroughgoing restructuring of
NATO, eventuating in a lesser American role. Two similar ones, from
Carter administration National Security Advisor Zbigniew Brzezinski
and Nixon-Ford administration Secretary of State Henry Kissinger,
have been taken very seriously in Europe-as a threat. They have been
taken somewhat less seriously in the United States.
Although some West Europeans lump these two proposals together
with the Withdrawers' efforts to get out of NATO entirely, and also with
Senator Nunn's pressures for the Alliance to live up to its stated commit-
ments and strategies, Brzezinski and Kissinger, Kristol and Krauss, and
Nunn really suggested three quite different directions. Some similarities
do exist: the Brzezinski and Kissinger proposals, like Kristol's and
Krauss's to get out, are based in part on the belief that the European
members of NATO are not carrying their fair share of either the burdens
or the responsibilities of an Alliance that was conceived under vastly dif-
ferent economic and political circumstances. And, like Nunn, Brzezinksi
and Kissinger are concerned about the U.S. nuclear deterrent, although
perhaps more with the possibility that the American commitment is no
longer sufficiently credible, and cannot be made credible, than with the
Senator's fear that the threshold is too low.
But the two former executive policymakers differ from the With-
drawers in that they want a continued strong American commitment,
conventional and nuclear, to Western Europe; and they differ from Nunn
in that they want to restructure fundamentally rather than improve
within the current apparatus.
In his 1986 book, Brzezinski started out sounding rather like the
Withdrawers, but ended up quite differently:
It is clear that the allocations for the defense of Western Europe
represent a massively disproportionate share of the overall U.S. mili-
tary budget.... These unbalanced global deployments have more to
do with history than with strategy. They reflect neither the actual
estimates of the Soviet military threat nor a measure of each area's
relative geopolitical importance....
Until and unless the European members of NATO are prepared to
raise and maintain enough conventional forces to fight those of the
Soviet Union to a standstill, the U.S. strategic deterrent and the U.S.
"Personal communication.
W -t.
132 I
front-line forces that would become immediately engaged in combat
remain a vital component of the overall Western effort to deter war
in Europe.
Undoubtedly, some Europeans will claim that any redeployment of
any U.S. troops will weaken U.S. defenses... [but a] gradual reduc-
tion of approximately 100,000 troops would... free U.S. budgetary
and manpower resources for the flexibility needed to respond to other
geostrategic threats.
77
And a year later, he made the strength of the commitment to NATO
within his reduction proposal even more explicit:
The U.S. commitment to the defense of Europe will remain as strong
as ever strategically and politically, given the fact that large U.S.
forces will continue to be.deployed in Europe, even with some reduc-
tions. Moreover, the U.S. nuclear guarantee will also continue to
provide a clear demonstration of that enduring commitment. In
brief, in the years ahead U.S. and European security should and will
remain organically insoluble and strategically coupled.71
Brzezinski's book is an overall analysis of the U.S. worldwide objec-
tives and strategy. Kissinger's proposal focuses more specifically on
NATO and is more detailed in both its analysis and its proposals. He
first discussed it in 1979, and later laid it out systematically in a 1984
article in Time magazine:
Existing arrangements are unbalanced. When one country dominates
the alliance on all major issues-little incentive remains for a serious
joint effort to redefine the requirements of security or to coordinate
foreign policies.... An imbalance such as the one now existing can-
not be corrected by "consultation," no matter how meticulous....
Those who governed Europe in the early postwar years were still
psychologically of the era when Europe bestrode the world... The
new leaders were reared in an era when the U.S. was pre-eminent;
they find it politically convenient to delegate Europe's military
defense to us.... The change in the nature of European leadership
has been paralleled in the U.S. Our new elites do not reject NATO
any more than do their European counterparts. But for them, too,
the alliance is more a practical than an emotional necessity, more a
military arrangement than a set of common political purposes....
A continuation of existing trends is bound to lead to the demoraliza-
tion of the Western alliance. An explicit act of statesmanship is
needed to give new meaning to Western unity and a new vitality to
NATO.
77Zbigniew Bruzinuki, Game P/w, The Atlantic Monthly Press, Boston and New
York, 1986, pp. 171-181.
"Zbigniew grrzenski, "Peosmful Change in a Divided Europ," in Thomson and Nor-
lich.
133
Kissinger's proposed program includes European assumption of "the
major responsibility for ground defense;" switching of the jobs of NATO
Secretary-General and Supreme Allied Commander so that the political
job of Secretary-General would become an American one whereas
SACEUR would be a European; European responsibility for "arms con-
trol negotiations dealing with weapons stationed on European soil;" and
redeployent of some, but by no means all, American ground forces to
U.S. soil.79
Whatever the perceptions of some European Couplers, Kissinger, like
Brzezinski, is far from advocating any sort of withdrawal from NATO.
Indeed, in Kissinger's case there is some irony in the fact that three years
after his Time piece, when he feared that something rather less radical
than his proposals-the zero-zero INF agreement-was about to hit
NATO, he sounded all the alarms. In an article questioning zero-zero,
written with former President Nixon, they warned that "If we strike the
wrong kind of deal, we could create the most profound crisis of the North
Atlantic Treaty Organization alliance in its 40-year history.
"
Ms Of
Kissinger's devotion to NATO there can be no doubt.
Not that the restructuring proposals go uncriticized by other Main-
tainers. An unspoken criticism is implicit in the fact that proposals by
such eminent, experienced, and responsible people as Brzezinski and
Kissinger are not widely discussed. They are feared by Couplers, but not
discussed in detail in Europe; for better or worse, most American Main-
tainer officials and analysts have ignored them in favor of the immediate
tasks and crises.
New York Times columnist Flora Lewis provides a summary that
could be the last word in this particular variation of the structural con-
troversy. In contrast to Kissinger's mourning "the change in the nature
of European leadership" and parallel American leadership, she quotes
retiring NATO Secretary General Lord Carrington, and goes on from
there:
"I am of the World War H generation.... [T]he next secretary gen-
eral should be of the postwar generation." The observation goes
beyond personalities to the heart of NATO's problems, reflected in
an unusual outpouring of proposals from both Americans and Euro-
peans for drastic change in the structure of the alliance. Practically
all of the suggestions, from people such as Henry Kissinger, Zbieg-
mew Brzezinski, former French President Valery Giscard dT'staing
and former German Chancellor Helmut Schmidt, as well as less
famous figures, are impractieal, unreasonable, even out,....
79
Henry Kissinger, "A Plan to Reshape NATO," Time, March 5, 194, pp. 20-23.
URichard M. Nizon and Henry A. Kissinger, "To Withdraw Missiles We Must Add
Conditions," Lot Anps Time, April 26,1987, Part V, p. 1.
. ' .1'' J
imimmin la U a m n~mnem mm nm s s m nm mmu . - --
134
NATO is not out of date. Nor is the organization and operation of
the alliance. The conditions that led to its formation have not disap.
peared, and none of the ideas for structural change would improve it
or probably work as well. What it needs is stimulation to thought
and curiosity. What it gets from Western leaders is old rhetoric.8
1
The Maintainers share an unease about the state of the Alliance,
although not necessarily an unease that goes beyond the traditional "In
this perilous moment in the history of the alliance." They share no com-
mon analysis of causes or solutions. But what the American Maintainers
all do continue to share-which the European Couplers continue to
doubt-is a firm commitment to American assistance in the defense of
Western Europe.
The Europeans' Commitments to Themselves
Most Americans skirt the question of closer ties among the European
members of NATO, treating it as a matter for Europeans, within the
overall issues of the U.S. commitment and the structure of the Alliance
as a whole. Most Maintainers would welcome a shoring up of the "Euro-
pean pillar," some doubt the possibilities, and a few believe that creation
of a truly European structure would strengthen the entire Alliance.
Brzezinski and Kissinger fall into the last group; stronger European
organization is necessary for the greater responsibilities they would like
the West Europeans to assume.
Columnist Lewis expresses a typical Maintainer view. She observes
"new talk about more defense cooperation among Europeans. This is all
to the good, especially because there is little chance of an increase in con-
ventional European defense."
8 2
General Rogers hopes for that conven-
tional increase, but otherwise he comes out in about the same place:
(TIhe West Europeans have realized that they must take a greater
interest in their own defence-try to keep the strategic nuclear
umbrella of the United States, tied to the security of Western
Europe, but to do more to strengthen the West European pillar of the
Trans-Atlantic bridge, and I think that's a good thing. And you see
that in the WEU [West European Union]-you'll see it in the Euro-
group, and you'll see it just in the bilateral meetings... between
France and Germany and between France and the United Kingdom,
and I think that's a good thing because all of that is contributory to a
credible deterrent for NATO.... I don't think it's necessarily a
divergence of interest.... But I do think that [Reykiavik] had a sort
of an alarm clock effect here in Western Europe, it rang a few bells
lora Lewis, "The Doldrums at NATO," New York Tima, July 27, 1987, p. 19.
0Flora Lewis, Ratlng 'Doubh.Zero'," New York Time., September 27, 1987, p. 27.
... .. .......... ..................... T
135j
and made them think, you know we're going to have to do more for
ourselves.
5
Like the Couplers, most Americans focus on the Franco-German rela-
tionship. Analytically a few are upbeat. After interviewing Helmut
Schmidt, Joan Bingham of the Atlantic Institute presented her own
hopes:
The "German question" sends tremors through the Elys6e. The
French fear German dreams of reunification will lead to neutralism.
The time is ripe for .a new unified defense system such as Helmut
Schmidt described or another configuration with a Franco-German
nucleus. As it is unthinkable that France would agree to be militarily
reintegrated in NATO, this new entity would give her a chance for a
dominant leadership role in Europe. Always suspicious of the
Anglo-Saxon, de Gaulle would have applauded. A new American
adminis"tation should welcome any strengthening of the European
pillar of the Atlantic Alliance even if it should be outside U.S. mili-
tary command.8
But columnist William Pfaff, himself an advocate in the Brzezinski A
and Kissinger mode of "a necessary reassessment of burdens and respon-
sibilities in the alliance," is nonetheless skeptical about the prospects.
Also having interviewed Schmidt, he says of Schmidt's proposal for a
Franco-German alliance with a Frenchman in command-'
The Schmidt argument that France and West Germany should com-
bine to look after the defense of Europe is tenable as a military pro-
position. Is anyone going to do anything about it? The French
might. The West Germans won't. At least they show no sign, thus
far, of doing anything like this, or even of very seriously considering
it.
5
This assessment was made after the leaders of the Federal Republic had
begun to squirm under the pressures of the imminent zero-zero agree-
ment.
Particularly since zero-zero became real, West European cooperation
has become of interest to several American newspaper columnists.
Ernest Conine of the Los Angeles Times foresees an eventual separation
of Europe from the United States. (He is not, however, a Withdrawer,
anxious for it to come about. He just sees it coming as the result of exist-
ing trends.)
*%Generul Bernard Roges in conversation with Jm Davidson," p. 12.
"'Joan Bingham, -The Remurnce of Europe," NMahile Tennema, July 19, 1967,
Outlook Section, p. 3.
William Pfsf "urope: Toward Independent Defense?" lenoMMiond HeMld T-
bun., April 19, 1987, p. 6.
mmmmmm m mln I ,,~~wmm., I m . -,
186
[T]here is a distinct feeling of unease among European political
leaders and defense professionals, as well as among those with paci-
fist inclinations. The unease has several roots. For many young
Germans it stems from an active dislike of the United States and a
growing conviction that West Germany does not control its own des-
tiny. Fundamentally pro-alliance leaders resent the fact that
Western Europe's political influence has not grown in proportion to
its economic strength, and they know it won't as long as Europe
depends so heavily on the United States for its security. Perhaps
most important, there is a loss of faith in the quality of American
leadership. There is also concern, nourished by recent U.S.-Soviet
negotiations on arms control, that America has begun a process of
nuclear disengagement from Europe.
The bottom-line reality... is that present arrangements are no
longer consistent with economic and political realities-including the
fact that an economically strapped America may soon feel compelled
to reduce its commitments to Europe for the simple reason that it
can no longer afford them.0
Conine's reading of "European political leaders and defense profession-
als" is rather like French publisher Jimmy Goldsmith's reading of Ameri-
cans ranging from Kristol to Nunn, and indeed setting Goldsmith's
March 1987 column alongside Conine's July piece provides another
example of resonance, moving in the opposite direction from the
attempts on both sides of the Atlantic to bolster one another. The
reverse resonance can be seen in the mutual reading of negative experts
on each side, advocating separation in part because of fears of the other
side advocating it. Conine's observation that the West Europeans are
concerned "that America has begun a process of nuclear disengagement
from Europe" provides an example of his reading of the European read-
ing of an American movement-which most American Maintainers
would contend is not taking place.
Conine does not believe that anything is going to happen soon. His
lead sentence is "The 'Europeanization' of European defense is not yet
an idea whose time has come." Most Maintainers are not likely to think
much about coping with it until and unless its time does come.
The Rest of the World
In the summer of 1987, when the United States Navy recognized that
minesweeping was not among its capabilities and the State Department
appealed to our allies for assistance in the Persian Gulf, their initial
smJnset Conine, "Europe May Find It Can Go It Alone," Lo AnSel. Time, July 13,
1967, Part 1,p. 5.
AL ~ JR,
137
rejection induced angry reactions from within the United States. The
Chicago Sun-Times editorialized,
One after another, America's Western friends and allies have rejected
the Reagan administration's request for help with minesweeping in
the Persian Gulf, where last month a mine caused considerable dam-
9age to a tanker navigating under U.S. protection. The most severe
blow, the hardest to take, is the one from Britain. Also on the nay-
saying list are France, West Germany and the Netherlands.117
The allies did ultimately assist, but the initial demurrer and the Amer-
ican reaction took their place in a string of such events dating from ear-
lier Gulf incidents in the 1970s and going through the refusal of NATO
members other than Britain to allow the use of bases or transit rights for
the bombing of Libya.
In general, the indeterminate role of European NATO members in
supporting U.S. out-of-area activities has been an irritant, particularly
when Americans felt that the activities were in the mutual interest of the
members-e.g., the maintenance of the flow of Gulf oil, which went
mostly to Europe and Japan, and the punishment of terrorism, which hit
Europeans as much as Americans. The irritant, however, has had more
of an effect on public opinion as exemplified by the Sun-Times editorial
and on the Withdrawers than it has on the debate among the Main-
tainers.
Brzezinski's analysis sounds like a mild version of the Withdrawers':
Today, the United States is weakest where it is most vulnerable-
along the strategic front that poses the greatest risk of either a major
Soviet geopolitical thrust or an American-Soviet collision.... While
American power is tenuous along the third strategic front in
southwest Asia, the United States still allocates more than half its
total military spending for the defense of the first front in Europe.
s
But unlike the Withdrawers he wants only to readjust, removing 100,000
troops from Europe and allocating the budgetary savings to the areas he
considers to be in greater danger.
Kissinger arrives at approximately the same point by a more political
route. In contrast to the old days of European colonialism,
Now it is Europe that insists that the treaty's obligations do not
extend to the developing world. And it is Europe that feels free to
disassociate itself from U.S. actions where indigenous upheavals and
Soviet efforts to outflank the alliance produce contemporary
cie.... This produces the following problems which must be
solved if long-term paralysis is to be avoided. The United States
I"KAmerica Betrayed by its Friends,Chicw Sun-TMm, Auput 4, 1987, p. 23.
tBrzezinsid, Gfame Pan, p. 175. The second strategic front is in the Far Est.
f , 8 . -
, ,,~~~~~~~ ~~ - :.. ,
'
.7. . . . . ] ., . .
cannot grant Europe a veto over its actions outside the NATO ae
unless it is ready to abdicate its responsibilities for the global equilib-
rium; but neither can it be in Europe's interest to undermine
America's willingness to defend its vital interests, for the defense of
Europe is part of these vital interests....
The conclusion, I believe, is unavoidable: Some American forces now
in Europe would contribute more to global defense if redeployed as
strategic reserves based in the United States, able to be moved to
world trouble spots.... [The) objective should be to distinguish
clearly between those American forces earmarked exclusively for the
defense of Europe and those available for other areas."
Carter administration Under Secretary of Defense Robert Komer
presents two cautions about such moves. The first relates to American
interests: "We have to be more prudent about Third World use of mili-
tary force on a scale that would seriously interfere with other higher
priority U.S. commitments."
9
This appraisal balances Komer's Carter
administration Defense Department background when he was primarily
concerned with NATO against his late 1960s experience when he had
major responsibilities in Vietnam.
Komer's second caveat concerns the West Europeans. Rather than
accusing them of shirking, we should understand that they evaluate and
prioritize differently:
The Europeans realize that denial of Persian Gulf oil access would
undermine the viability of NATO Europe without any Warsaw Pact
attack. They also realize that the Soviet Union could exert great
political pressures on them simply by turning on and off the flow of
Middle East oil. But they are even more concerned that the Alliance
still falls short of meeting even initial conventional defence require-
ments in Europe itself... In effect, the U.S. seems to be focusing
increasingly on third-area contingencies, whereas NATO Europe
tends to regard this as a risky overextension of U.S. resources at the
expense of adequate priority to European defence.
9
'
Although Komer is, here and elsewhere, a strong advocate of increased
West European contributions for conventional defense, he does not com-
ment further on the irony of Europe's difficulty in increasing these con-
tributions while criticizing the U.S. lack of "adequate priority to Euro-
pean defence." This is what bothers the Withdrawers as well as the
burden-sharing Maintainers.
-enry A. Kimger, "Redo NATO to Restore the Alliance," Los Anueks Timm, May
11, 1966, Part V, pp. 1-4.
9Robert W. Komer, Maritime Strate& or Coalition Defense? University Pre of
America, Lanham, Md, 1984, p. 88.
"Robert W. Komer, "Problems of Overetension: Reconciling NATO Defence and
Out-of-Area Contingencies: Part It," in Intrnational Institute for Strategic Studies,
Adelphi Pape 207, pp. 64-06.
J..
Komer's own prescription is for specialization. In 1984, he argued for
a "division of labor" in which the United States would be responsible for
protecting the flow of oil "while the other affected allies concentrate on
shoring up their own home-defense capabilities. " Two years later, he
reported progress, in that the NATO Defense Ministers did accept "a
new set of biennial force goals meant to provide compensation for possi-
ble U.S. deployments outside the NATO area," but he pointed out that
"force goals are a far cry from actual forces.
8
Komer, and Brzezinski and Kissinger, and the other Maintainers all
provide answers to the question of allocation of responsibilities for
NATO defense of joint interests in the rest of the world. Further, they
recognize that not all interests are joint. An issue they tend to finesse,
however, is the overall failure of Europe to join in the global anticom-
munist crusade so ardently desired by the Withdrawers and espoused in
part by the Reagan administration. This is because few of the Main-
tainers outside of the administration espouse that crusade," and those .
within, wherever they stand philosophically, must balance it against the
immediate needs of NATO.
Komer, however, does confront the naval version of the Withdrawers'
global emphasis, which he believes to be the implicit strategy of the
Reagan administration, as inevitable defense budget cuts imposed by the
Congress leave in place the substantial number of new ships being built
together with the requirement to support them at the cost of other mili-
tary expenditures." And his own response strikes hard at the presumed
new strategy:
Cutting the coat to fit the cloth by concentrating on a primarily mar-
itime strategy cannot adequately protect our vital interests in Eurasia
because it cannot adequately deter a great land-based power like the
USSR.... Even if all Soviet home and overseas naval bases were
put out of action, and Soviet naval and merchant vessels swept from
the high seas, this would not suffice to prevent Moscow from seizing
or dominating the rimlands of Eurasia, including the two great indus-
trial agglomerations of Europe and Japan, and cutting off their
economic lifeblood-Middle East oil....
Some advocates of a maritime strategy evade this issue by contending
that Europe is now more than rich enough to provide for its own
defense.... True, a stronger and more integrated European defense
"Komer, Mwain Stratey or Coalition Defense? p. 86.
"Komer, *Problems of Overextension," p. 68.
"Kisinger is active in the debate over the Third World a well as NATO, although
he is close to the Reagan administration on many issues, he is of a distinetly different
viw hom'its a iwAr contingent. Bee Levin, The A Deate and t e71ird Wrt
Have We eda from Vietnam
f
t
omer, Maritime St vy or Coauion Defens, pp. N-59.
_ __
140
effort would be highly desirable, and has always been favored by
Washington on strategic grounds. But to suggest that Europe alone
would do what Europe plus America so far have not done is whistling
in the wind.... Indeed, adoption of a primarily maritime strategy
would have a devastating impact on the very network of alliances on
which the United States is so dependent to maintain a credible deter-
rent or defensive balance vis-&-vis the USSR96
Although the Maintainers agree with this continued European
emphasis, they remain worried about both the strategic and burden-
sharing issues, and about the effects of irritated American public opinion
as well, and they look for various means to structure American and Euro-
pean responsibilities. To the extent that the United States backs off
some extremes in defining its unilateral global interests-in a new
administration, perhaps
97
-the remaining issues between the Main-
tainers and the European Couplers will be no more divisive than those in
most other areas. Resonance with our allies is possible here, as else-
where. Schlesinger may be the most understanding of all the Main-
tainers:
From time to time, Americans have been annoyed to discover that,
for some reason or other, Europeans do not wish to see the cold war
resumed in the heart of Europe-just because the Russians
dispatched military forces into a country-Afghanistan in 1979-that
they had politically taken over a year earlier-or because of conflicts
in the Caribbean, Central America, the Horn of Africa or wherever.
A gratuitious spillover of Third World struggles into Europe is unac-
ceptable to the Europeans-and Americans simply have to accept this
reality.
9
8
But Schlesinger is not in office.
THE OPPONENT
The Soviet Union
There is less difference between the Maintainers and the Couplers on
their analyses of the Soviet Union than on any of the other issues.
Although the interpretation of Soviet ends and means is basic to design
of NATO political and military posture, the questions about the Soviets
are intellectual ones; and the answers are intellectual and perhaps
lbid., pp. 67-09.
978a Lei e, The Arm Debate and the Third World: Hae We Lawned Fron Viet-
n pam4
W$chlbenger, p. 87749.
____, 1./.,.,- : . .,. .*
141
ideological, rather than being based directly on varying national
interests. In the Western world, a Sovietologist is a Sovietologist is a
Sovietologist, and although their interpretations of objectives and stra-
tegies vary over a very wide range, the range is about the same on both
sides of the Atlantic. It is possible that the Maintainer range of recent
interpretations of Gorbachev and his changes is even broader than the
Coupler range, but that may be a statistical phenomenon based on the
fact that the United States turns out more Sovietologists than Europe.
Even more than in Europe, there is an American far right with the
views on the Soviet Union exemplified by President Reagan's "evil
empire" speech; but by the mid-1980s the president had dropped the
phrase and apparently the viewpoint, much to the disgust of some of his
more conservative supporters. Many of these had decided that the real
struggle with communism was elsewhere than in Europe and had become
Withdrawers; the remainder differed little from the more suspicious end
of the narrow range of views held by virtually all Maintainers before Gor-
bachev.
Before Gorbachev-indeed, from the death of Stalin to the death of
Chernenko, with some slight weakening during the Khrushchev era-the
standard view of American Sovietologists was that the Soviet objective
was to drive us out of Europe, that only their tactics varied over the
years, but that their military power was always an essential instrument
for those tactics. Almost alone as an exception among the Maintainers
was George Kennan who has contended for almost four decades that his
"containment"
doctrine had been badly misinterpreted and that he had
"never believed that they have seen it in their interests to overrun
Western Europe militarily."
More typically, Alan Platt of RAND has presented a succinct list of
Soviet objectives, and a history of recent strategies and tactics they have
used to reach these objectives, as of mid-1985. At that time, Gorbachev
had been in command only a few months:
Throughout the postwar period, there has been a fundamental con-
tinuity in what the Soviet Union has sought in Western Europe-the
transformation of the status quo in favor of Soviet interests. In try-
ing to bring about this long-term objective, the Soviets have sought
to: Maintain a Soviet military advantage in the European theater,
Ensure continued East European responsiveness to Soviet interests;
Secure widespread acknowledgment of the Soviet Union as a super-
power co-equal with the United States; Expand Soviet access to
Western technology and credits; Loosen American political and mili-
I III
_IIII ils l
tary ties with Western Europe; Transform West European political
systems from within by aiding "progressive" elements."
Platt then went on to describe Soviet policy through the first half of the
1980s as repeatedly attempting to achieve these objectives by tactics of
wooing the United States, then Western Europe, then both, then neither.
None of these worked, their failure set the stage for Gorbachev's more
radical changes.
Such descriptions of Soviet fundamental objectives and of the oppor-
tunistic means of reaching those objectives commanded a substantial
consensus among Maintainers at that time. As Helmut Schmidt did on
the Coupler side, Brzezinski put it into a historical as well as a geopoliti-
cal context:
From time immemorial, Russian society expressed itself politically
through a state that was mobilized and regimented along military
lines, with the security dimension serving as the central organizing
impulse. The absence of clearly definable national boundaries made
territorial expansion the obvious way of assuring security.... Rus-
sian history is, consequently, a history of sustained territorial expan-
sion.'
In a book whose subtitle, "Dismantling the East-West Military Con-
frontation" indicates its hope for a much more relaxed future, Jonathan
Dean described the same recent events discussed by Platt, but with less
of an air of Soviet inexorability-
There is a clear pattern in this record. It is one of repeated Soviet
attempts to influence West European, especially Federal German,
policy, using Soviet military power as a basis for these efforts-and
of repeated failure of these attempts. This is the reality of the Soviet
intimidation issue, and it seems likely to continue.0
1
'
Platt stressed the repetition of the attempts, Dean their failure; the dis-
tance is not great, but it spans the range of Maintainers' views before the
recognition that Gorbachev was likely to make a difference, one way or
the other.
Platt laid out five possible future Soviet policy alternatives as seen
from his 1985 vantage point: attempted breakup of NATO by favoring
Western Europe at the expense of the United Stats; the same by
OsAlan Platt, Soiet- Wed Ewvpe Reiktion: Recent Trends and Near-Term Pros-
Pects, The RAND Corporation, R-3316-AF, March 19K6, p. v. Although the report
appeared in 1986, Flatt's preface states that "It largely reflects information available as
of August 1985."
'Brseinski, Game Plan, p. 17.
1
'Dean, Watershed in Europe, p. 84.
m mn Immm~m mmm - .-
143
favoring the United States; defying both Western Europe and the United
States; attempted renewal of d6tente by extending overtures to both; and
"a purposefully confrontational policy toward the West."
12
His own esti-
mate was that "short-term Soviet policy, despite public denials, is likely
to proceed along the path suggested by the first alternative",
18
the
attempt to seduce the West Europeans away from the United States.
In fact, by the time 18 months had passed, the alternative chosen by the J
Soviets was recognized by the Maintainers, to the surprise of practically all
of them, to be the pursuit of detente with both sides of NATO. But this
recognition has not ended a debate, it has begun one-a far more funda-
mental debate over the Soviet Union than has taken place within NATO
since its beginning. The two sides were laid out by Platt in his evalua-
tion of what a Soviet move toward d6tente might imply:
[I]t might signify a major change in the way the Soviet Union sought
to approach the United States and Western Europe. Or, on the other
hand, it might just signify a continued long-term effort to loosen ties
within the Atlantic Alliance, but through the choice of different
short-term means to this end.
1
Gorbachev has made a difference. That is accepted by Maintainer as
by Coupler Sovietologists. Whether the difference is a "major change" in
direction or a new and perhaps brilliant set of tactics, still designed "to
loosen ties within the Atlantic Alliance," divides the Maintainers as it
does the Couplers.
On the suspicious side, Harry Gelman of RAND asserts that Soviet
goals are unchanged
The central core of [Soviet] goals remains the gradual reduction of
American presence and influence in Western Europe, provided this
happens under circumstances that do not promote the emergence of
an effective substitute-a coherent West European offset to Soviet
geopolitical weight in Europe.10
5
And he provides a scorecard of how well Gorbachev was doing, as of
mid-1987. On the pro-Soviet side, he counts narrowing West European
popular support for nuclear deterrence, decaying consensus in West Ger-
many, flexible Soviet adaptation to their failure to prevent INF installa-
tion, Soviet ability to exploit Western tensions over conventional arms
control, the favorable effect on Western public opinion of Soviet internal
reforms, the gap between the United States and Europe on Third World
102
Platt, pp. iu-i.
1
1%Ibd., p. 37.
10 4
1bid., p. 35.
lc6Harry Gelman, Gorbachev's Policies Toward Western Europe: A Balance Sheet, The
RAND Corporation, R-3588-AF, October 1987, p. vi.
~(
144
issues, and West European discomfort over American political errati-
cism." On the debit side for the Soviets are the failure of the left to gain
political power in West Germany or Britain, the anti-Soviet trend in
French policy, a strengthening of West European political forces favor-
ing security cooperation but not advocating greater independence from
the United States, the possibility that glasnost might unleash uncontroll-
able forces within the Soviet Union, internal Soviet controversy over
economic cooperation with the West, and the possibility that policies
within the Soviet Union might decrease control over the satellite
nations.
10 7
By no means all the Maintainers would agree with Gelman's assertion
that the Soviets retain the same core objective of dominating Western
Europe by driving the Americans out that they have had since Stalin's
day. Until Gorbachev, almost all did agree; after his first year, a number
diverged from the thinking that scored him purely on the old goals. Wil-
liam Hyland, the editor of Foreign Affairs, uses his journal to take direct
issue with those who see new means to old ends:
It is possible to see in Gorbachev's changes nothing more than shifts
in tactics. It can even be argued that the wily old Gromyko would
have arrived at similar conclusions about the position of the Soviet
Union, but without resorting to Gorbachev's novel rhetoric. A more
persuasive analysis, however, is that Gorbachev views foreign policy
in much the same way he sees his domestic situation. That is, he
still believes in the basic system but recognizes that radical changes
are in order, and that this will involve paying a price in the near
term to achieve longer term aims. Thus he is introducing innovative
elements into current Soviet foreignpolicies which are beginning to
outweigh the elements of continuity."
"Paying a price in the near term to achieve longer term aims" might be
interpreted as new tactics with old strategy, but Hyland's next two sen-
tences are:
In sum, the accession of Mikhail Gorbachev to the leadership of the
Communist Party of the Soviet Union marks the beginning of a new
historical period. The transition from Brezhnev to Gorbachev is a
genuine generational change, unlike the transfer of power from
Khrushchev to Brezhnev in 1964.
Professor Jerry Hough of Duke University and the Brookings Institu-
tion provides a historical-sociological explanation for the change. In
'
0
eIbid., pp. viii-xiv.
17Ibid., pp. xvi-xxiii.
'
1
eWilliam G. Hyland, "Reagan-Gorbachev III," Foreign Affairs, Fall 1987, p. 10.
-- -- .. . ...
q - - 14
opposition to the concept set forth by Brzezinski and Schmidt that
Soviet expansion is the continuation of centuries of Russian history, he
espouses the theory that interprets "the Communist revolution as an
overthrow of Peter the Great's Westernized elite and a break with
Russia's natural evolution toward constitutional democracy." In recent
years, however, the elite has reasserted itself and is demanding not
democracy but a "looser one-party dictatorship." The effect on external
policy is a tradeoff:
The deal for the middle class is clear: a looser political system in
exchange for the lash of foreign economic competition.... Moscow
needs to focus foreign policy on improving relations with Europe and
Japan. That means Moscow will have to make concessions to
Europe and Japan and decrease the number of troops facing Europe
to reduce fears about investing in the Soviet Union."w
And economist Charles Cooper agrees with Hough on attributing inter-
nal causes to Soviet change, but turns the argument in an economic
direction: "Gorbachev has indeed made a difference, but that difference
reflects the 'fact' of Soviet economic deterioration."

Hyland's explanation is external rather than internal to the Soviet


Union:
For some reason we refuse to learn how to live with the undeniable
success of American foreign policy since World War II.... We have
won the ideological war; we are close to winning the geopolitical con-
test in the Third World, except for the Middle East. We long ago
won the economic competition. As James Reston remarked in his
final regular column for the New York Times, "I think we've won the
cold war and don't know it.""'
His operational conclusion from this is moderate: "Preserving the
European alliance must remain the cornerstone of American policy,"
112
but others, who have been pushing for U.S.-Soviet rapprochement for
much longer and now see the world catching up to them, wax more
enthusiastic. At the start of the 1987 zero-zero negotiations, Arthur Cox,
secretary of the American Committee on U.S.-Soviet Relations, con-
tended,
Gorbachev is eager to reach an agreement with Reagan for deep
reductions in all types of nuclear weapons. Despite the debacle of
the Iran-contra affair, Reagan still has an opportunity to salvage the
integrity of his presidency by reaching a momentous agreement with
1
'OJerry F. Hough, "New Deal in Moscow," New York Tims, February 13, 1987.
"
0
Peaonal communication.
.
"'Hyland, pp. 14-15.
1.
2
.bid., p. 16.
e "
.".,, __ _ __ _ _ nn*m
"'--g u nu n n
,n
5
m' n ,. _
146
Gorbachev to end the arms race and drastically reduce the nuclear
arsenalsa"
3
And Abraham Brumberg, former editor of the journal Problems of
Communism and something of a patriarch among Sovietologists, delin-
eates the two extremes and a middle group, and then stakes out a some-
what different middle position for himself:
One school holds that the Soviet Union will inevitably be
transformed into a genuine democracy. Its adherents include a sprin-
kling of "revisionist" historians, whose writings on the Stalin period
would bring a blush to the cheeks of even their most orthodox Soviet
colleagues.... A much larger group consists of those who claim that
the Communist system cannot change, no matter what.... There is
a third group, the skeptics, whose case is clearly more persuasive
than the others.... Mr. Gorbachev may mean well, they say, but
how can he succeed in efforts that strike at some of the most long-
lived and tenacious features of Soviet society?
Healthy skepticism is justifiable but not to the point of dismissing
the possibility of change. The reforms may yet fail, stall, or dissi-
pate. Yet nothing in our logic or experience supports the notion that
the Soviet leadership may be unable to change their country. Only
our assumptions tell us that.
14
Most Maintainers take one version or another of this middle position,
and the conclusion that most of them come to is uncertainty but perhaps
some hope. The prudence of Coupler Christoph Bertram's "even if these
expressions of intent are genuine, Soviet power will be of a profoundly
ambiguous nature for a very long time to come" is in no way inconsistent
with Brumberg's "The reforms may yet fail, stall, or dissipate. Yet noth-
ing in our logic or experience supports the notion that Soviet leadership
may be unable to change their country."
All of which has led to a new question for debate: Should we attempt
from the outside to assist Gorbachev overcome internal opposition to his
reforms?"
5
Whitney MacMillan, chief executive of Cargill, Inc., a major
American grain-exporting firm, and Richard Ullman of Princeton, con-
tend "that it is very much in the interest of the goal of American policy
3
Arthur Macy Cox, 'Revising U.S. Perceptions of Gorbachev's New Thinking," Los
Angeles Times, March 8, 1987, Part V, pp. 1-3.
'
4
Abraham Brumberg, "Moscow, Seen Clearly," New York Times, September 2, 1987.
"
5
Actually, this question, like most others, is not really new, having come up in one
form or another since Khrushchev. During the long Brezhnev years, however, few
Western Sovietologists of any view saw much political payoff from Western attempts to
exploit ideological differences within the Kremlin.
L
147
to help him," and propose both arms control measures and economic
assistance.
11
6 Columnist Stephen Rosenfeld argues that
[WIe have no right to assume that the United States actually could
'help' Mr. Gorbachev.... [Making] 'preemptive' concessions as dis-
tinguished from reciprocal ones could simply invite the Kremlin to
pocket
unearned
gains."
7
Perhaps the best bottom line for most Couplers is the last line of a
letter to the editor of the New York nmes by Indiana University
Economics Professor Nicolas Spulber Gorbachev's "success or failure
certainly does not depend on any such help but rather on the capacity of
these changes to deliver better goods and services than before."'" This
matches the caution of Bertram and Brumberg.
Eastern Europe
The Maintainers pay substantially more attention to Eastern Europe
as a whole than do the European Couplers. One reason is that the larger
number of American Sovietologists allows for more specialization.
Another is that the fairly recent East European roots of many Americans
lead to more of an interest in the Soviet satellite nations. For similar
reasons, the Maintainers treat less with the "German question"; most
German immigration to the United States was many generations back.
One American attitude toward the Eastern nations is that expressed
by Huntington. The central thesis of his counteroffensive strategy is
that it would compel the Soviets "to reallocate forces and resources to
the defense of their satellites and thus to weaken their offensive thrust."
More specifically,
[T]he adoption of this strategy should he accompanied with a clear
invitation to Eastern European governments to avoid invasion by
opting out of a Soviet-initiated war. At the very least, such an invi-
tation would create uneasiness, uncertainty, and divisiveness within
satellite governments, and hence arouse concern among the Soviets
as to their reliability. In practice, the allied offensive would have to
he accompanied with carefully composed political-psychological war-
fare appeals to the peoples of Eastern Europe stressing that the allies
were not fighting them but the Soviets and urging them to cooperate
with the advancing forces and to rally to the liberation of their coun-
tries from Soviet military occupation and political control.
11
'
neWitaey MacMillan and Richard H. Ulman, "AmerW's Self-Interest in Hopn
Gorbachev," New York Time, October 7, 1987, p. 23.
"'Stephen S. Roenfeld, "Go Slow on Glasnost," Inftmemal Herld Trhkne,
October 14, 1987, p. 4 (reprinted from the Washwton Post).
"
8
Nicolas Spulber, "Proof of Gorbachev Pudding is in Soviet Tmt,- No York
JmesW, October 22, 1987.
"'9Huntington, The Rened ot S&te, p. 31.
- * .... ' '; 'f
,.
k.zAf$
4
4
.
, . .' : : "' ,,'' K.
148
As has been noted, the counteroffensive strategy is opposed by most
Maintainers and Couplers. Most Sovietologists (of which Huntington is
not one) take another tack. As described by Milan Svec of the Carnegie
Endowment for International Peace: "The principle behind United
States policy toward Eastern Europe has for many years been
'differentiation'-in effect, a promise to reward those governments that
show greater tolerance, flexibility and independence from Moscow.
" 12
One of the leading advocates of differentiation is Brzezinski, who
pushed in this direction long before the "many years* during which it has
been national policy, long before it became obvious. In 1961, writing
with William Griffith, he called for
a policy of what might be called peaceful engagement in Eastern
Europe. This policy should- (1) aim at stimulating further diversity
in the Communist bloc; (2) thus increasing the likelihood that East
European states can achieve a greater measure of political indepen-
dence from Soviet domination (3) thereby ultimately leading to the
creation of a neutral belt of states which, like the Finnish, would
enjoy genuine popular freedom of choice in internal policy while not
being hostile to the Soviet Union and not belonging to Western Mili-
tary alliances.
121
Not that Brzezinski has been under any illusions as to the possibilities
for rapid change. Writing a quarter-century later, after his stint as
National Security Advisor and at a time when Gorbachev had just come
into power, he points out that:
Despite forty years of forced indoctrination, all the Communist
regimes in Eastern Europe remain in power through heavy reliance
on severe internal police control, reinforced by the potential threat of
Soviet intervention-and by Soviet troops on the ground in Poland,
East Germany, Czechoslovakia, and Hungary.... At the same time,
Moscow is determined to restrict the scope of East European
independence in foreign affairs. At the first Warsaw Pact meet-
ing held under Gorbachev's chairmanship, the principle of tight coor-
dination was firmly reasserted.'
2 2
Brzezinski's strategy for change in Eastern Europe fits into his overall
schema to put more of NATO's responsibilities onto its European
members. Marking the fortieth anniversary of the 1945 Yalta Agree-
ment, supposed to have divided Europe between East and West (Brzezin-
ski argues that the decision was made earlier), he emphasized that:
no81im fvec, "Let's Warm Up Relations with Eastern Europe," New York Tines,
January 23, 1987, p. 27.
12Zbignw Brzezinski and Willum Griffith, "Peaceful Engaement in Eastern
Europe," Forein Affairs, July 1961, p. 644.
WBieinski, Game Plan, pp. 82-8M.
i~in mmnnnmmmmll rns mm INI m - - - InU wen m mmmnam~na m , '
149
the historic balance in Europe will be changed gradually in the
West's favor only if Russia comes to be faced west of the Elbe rather
less by America and rather more by Europe. Thoughtful Europeans
realize, moreover, that the future of Europe is intertwined with the
future of Germany and of Poland.'
His program included. NATO's "publicly repudiating... the partition of
Europe," which he terms "the historic legacy of Yalta," while simul-
taneously "reconfirmfing] its commitment to the Helsinki Final Act,"
which "confirmed the durability of the existing frontiers in central and
eastern Europe," creating "the maximum number of opportunities for
Eastern European participation in various all-European bodies," inten-
sifying "aid to those East Europeans who are struggling actively for the
political emancipation of Eastern Europe," and implementing his ideas
for the restructuring of NATO.lU
Two years later, after Gorbachev had begun to make his distinct mark,
Brzezinski reiterated his central themes:
In the heart of Europe, we can see a revival of the old concept of
Mitteleuropa. Today, the average Czechoslovak, Hungarian, or Pole
openly professes that he feels closer to the typical Austrian, German,
or further west the Frenchman than to his eastern neighbors....
We must exploit these trends and build on the confidence in the fact
that the existing territorial status quo in Europe, as confirmed by the
Helsinki agreements, is no longer subject to change. We must seek
on that basis to shape progressively a new political reality in
Europe.
1
2
Ross Johnson of RAND analyzes the same issues from the viewpoint
of the Soviet bloc itself-the governments of the East European nations
and the pressures and constraints they put on the Soviet Union:
[At] the end of Gorbachev's first year [1986-88], the motives that
impelled the East European leaderships to cultivate special ties with
Western Europe in the wake of NATO's INF deployment remained
as strong as ever and continued to complicate Soviet policies directed
toward increasing discipline and cohesion in Eastern Europe....
Thus, since the mid-1970s, the Soviets have faced an increasingly
pronounced dilemma in attempting to use control over Eastern
Europe to promote greater Soviet influence in Western Europe while
at the same time attempting to avoid the "reverse influence" from
'23b.niew Brezitski, he Future of Yalta," Foren Ajfra, Winter 1984/1905,
p. 294.
'"I1bid., pp. 296-299.
*
1
Brzeinski, "Peaceful Change in a Divided Europe," pp. 4-17.
_ _ _ _ _ _ _ Z-_._ __
150
Western Europe that could threaten Soviet control of Eastern
Europe.
12
6
The constraints seen analytically by the Maintainer Sovietologists
thus coincide substantially with the strategies recommended by Brzezin-
ski and the others who want to differentiate among members of the
Soviet "bloc": Gorbachev cannot allow too great a scope for autonomy,
and the West should not push for it. The structure is fragile, and too
much internal or external pressure in the wrong place might cause its
collapse; few Maintainers would shed tears over that, except that too
sudden a collapse might bring instability, confrontation, and combat.
And no Maintainer wants to take that risk. The possibilities are thus
quite limited.
All this leaves out Germany, on which the Maintainers concentrate
less than the West Europeans, particularly, of course, the Germans
themselves. When the Maintainers do write about the two Germanies,
however, they tend to worry. Brzezinski, for example, uses the division
of Germany as a major reason why policy toward Eastern Europe cannot
proceed along current lines, but he also betrays a substantial concern
with the direction of current German policy based on that division:
[Tihe partition of Germany within the partition of
Europe... guarantees a continuing political struggle for the future of
Germany and, consequently, for the future of Europe.... West
Germans-no longer dominated by feelings of war guilt, less mesmer-
ized by the American ideal, and distressed by the failure of Europe to
become an alternative to divisive nationalisms--are naturally drawn
to a growing preoccupation with the fate of their brethren living
under an alien system. The notion that the destiny of a United Ger-
many depends on a close relationship with Russia is not a new one in
German political tradition.... As a consequence, West Germany is
already pursuing a distinctive policy of its own toward the East. It
carefully avoids provoking Moscow on such neuralgic issues as
Poland-the geopolitical linchpin state of Eastern Europe-and cul-
tivates a special relationship with East Germany.... [This] reac-
tionary and dangerous regime has been the beneficiary of significant
West German economic assistance--and this has directly contributed
to East Germany's emergence as Moscow's most important junior
partner.
1
2
Such American fears do not map well onto the statements of German
Couplers from all parts of the political spectrum that unification is a
remote ideal at best, and that the ties that are being created to the East
must be within the compass of the Western Alliance; nor are they
12A. Ros Johnson, The Impact of Eastern Europe on Soviet Policy Toward Wesatn
Europe, The RAND Corporation, R-3382-AF, March 1966, p. xi.
11
7Brzuinski, Game Pa, pp. 197-199.
..
j mlmmm mm~mmmm maa l~. mmm~m mmm~mm m m lmm m
151J
matched by any substantial fears stemming from Germany's European
NATO partners. The debate in Europe is as much about the Federal
Republic's ties to France as it is about the ties to the Communist German
Democratic Republic. "Rapallo," the 1920s agreement between the Ger-
man Weimar Republic and the Soviet Union, which is the reference for
Brzezinski's comment that the notion of a "close relationship with Russia
is not a new one in German political tradition," is laughed off in Europe as
a model for current policy.
This does not mean that the Maintainers' fears are completely unjusti-
fled. It does mean that intra-German relations, unlike other issues of
Eastern Europe, are viewed substantially differently on both sides of the
Atlantic.
ARMS CONTROL AND DISARMAMENT
The Maintainers express no peculiarly American views on arms con-
trol and disarmament; given the resonating attempts to calm European
fears, particularly about Reykjavik and the zero-zero agreement, the same
positions can be found as among the Couplers. But both the balance of
views and the details of the way they are approached are quite different.
This section, as with the corresponding discussion of the Couplers,
stresses the debate over zero-zero, leaving subsequent developments for
the Epilog.
The Maintainers were sharply divided over the zero-zero agreement.
In 1987, for the first time in 40 years, both arms controls in Europe and
arms reductions anywhere in the world suddenly looked real. Radical
change is shocking, and for that reason if no other, opposition to zero-zero
was more prevalent among Maintainers than support.
The opposition to zero-zero was spearheaded by General Rogers in his
last days as SACEUR; that was a major reason why they were his last
days. Shortly after retiring from that position and from the United States
Army, he summarized his view:
Removing the land-based intermediate-range nuclear forces now
would return NATO to its weak pre-1979 posture. In fact, because
the Russians have continued to improve their conventional and
nuclear forces, NATO would be in an even worse position now. To
establish credible deterrence, two capabilities, listed in NATO's
guidelines for using nuclear weapons, are vital: the ability to strike,
with certainty, targets deep in the Soviet homeland.. . and a number
of nuclear escalatory options between conventional forces and the use
of strategic nuclear forces. The proposed I.N.F. agreement would
eliminate the Pershing 2 missiles and thereby remove the first capa-
bility. It would also eliminate a crucial escalatory option.
1
'
2
1xRoprs, "Why Compromise Our Deterrent Strergth in Europe?"
.,.A
.. . ,. :
,mmii mmu m m m i ~ mm m v CII1 nnmint i j
162
Kissinger stressed political as much as military reasons for opposing
the agreement, including some major points of resonance to West Euro-
pean positions. He listed six flaws in the proposal: It contributed to
decoupling; it reduced "the Soviet nuclear threat to Europe only slightly,"
it continued the abandonment of "European leaders who staked their
political positions on American proposals for the nuclear defense of
Europe," it gave the Soviets a veto over Western nuclear deployments, it
complicated "the possible replacement of American missiles by European
ones," and it created additional problems by allowing the Soviets to retain
missiles in Asia.
1
2
9
The last of these objections was taken care of when the
Soviets agreed to remove all intermediate-range missiles rather than
retaining the 100 they had proposed to keep in Asia while we retained an
equal number elsewhere than in Europe.
A few weeks later, Kissinger joined his former boss Richard Nixon in a
considerably softer position, disapproving of the treaty but accepting it
under two conditions, one of which was the elimination of the Asian mis-
siles and the other a strong linkage to additional arms control agreements
improving the conventional balance.'
s
In the event, once the treaty was
agreed to, they favored ratification, primarily on the ground that failure
to do so would be one more twist in the American erraticism that had
been destroying West European confidence and threatening the Alliance
itself.
How did we get to a position and a treaty seen to be so unsatisfactory?
Kissinger attributes it to Washington and international bureaucracy:
As often happens in Washington, quite disparate elements combined
to produce the zero option. Throughout the 1970s opponents of arms
control had obscured what was an objection in principle by claiming
that they wanted to go beyond freezing existing deployments to major
reductions of nuclear arsenals. This had the additional advantage,
from their point of view, of giving them two chances to slow down an
agreement-first by urging wider reductions and then by proposing
intrusive verification to check on reductions.... Other supporters of
the zero option included neo-isolationists and military technicians
who preferred U.S. missiles at sea or within the United States to
reduce the automatic nature of any nuclear response. European
leaders had... at first asked for the INF to balance the Soviet
deployment of hundreds of the new 8S-20 medium-range missiles....
But rattled by the combination of Soviet-orchestrated diplomatic
pressures and growing public assaults, the European allies took
refuge in an evasion-that the INF could some day be traded for the
SS-20....
s *Hnzy A. Kisinger, "Missiles: A Zero Option I No Choice," Los Angels Tmna,
April , 1987, Part V, V. 2.
mNizon and Kisg.
.mm
';
15
All this was woven together into a formal proposal by the then-
dominant group in the [Reagan] White House. They knew little
about strategy and less about arms control....
The traditional arms controllers started out on the sidelines of this
particular exercise. But committed as they were to the proposition
that there is no such thing as a good new weapon, they have since
joined the fray with a passion.'
8
'
Elizabeth Drew of the New Yorker, ordinarily much more friendly to
arms control than Kissinger (but less friendly to the Reagan administra-
tion) presented an interpretation of the later stages of the zero-zero nego-
tiation similar to Kissinger's story of its birth:
(Flew people in the Administration think that an I.N.F agreement is
very important-as compared, say, with a possible agreement on deep
reductions in long-range nuclear weapons or an agreement on deploy-
ment of the Strategic Defense Initiative.... [An] I.N.F. agreement
solves a number of problems for the Administration at what its offi-
4 cials we as little cost. Best of all it gives Reagan an arms-control
agreement.... The situation has other benefits for arms-control
opponents: some of them do not at all mind that we might reach an
agreement with the Soviets that makes the Europeans unhappy...
One can also detect on the part of some Administration officials a
certain pleasure over the fact that the potential I.N.F. agreement has
split the arms control community. The subject of I.N.F. particularly
lends itself to theological disputes, and the theologians have gone at
it with great zest.
1
m
The pro-arms control theologians were, in fact, somewhat split by the
zero-zero proposal. House Armed Services Committee Chairman Les
Aspin opposed it because he believed it started at the wrong end, remov-
ing the more stable nuclear weapons and leaving those least subject to
central control.'
a
Most, however, favored it if not because, in Kissinger's
words, they thought that "there is no such thing as a good new weapon,"
at least because they attributed great importance to the first agreement to
actually reduce nuclear weapons. In the words of Carter administration
chief arms negotiatior Paul Warnke: "It is important that an
intermediate-range nuclear forces treaty be promptly completed so that
the superpowers can get on with the more serious business of strategic-
range nuclear forces."
1
'
'
8
Kissinpr, "Missiles: A Zero Option Is No Choice."
'2lizabeth Drew, "Letter from Washington," New Yorker, May 4, 1987, pp. 140-141.
18Les Aspin, "But Battlefield Nuclear Weapons Should Go First," International
Herald Trbune, April 28, 1987, p. 4. (reprinted from the Washington Post).
1
3
4
Paul C. Warnke, "An Abiding Love Affair with the Bomb," New York Times,
August 13, 1987, p. 19.
164
On the specific issues of zero-zero, Charles Schultze, who had been
Chairman of President Carter's Council of Economic Advisors and before
that President Johnson's Budget Director, questioned the anti-zero-zero
view, using the same scholastic figure of speech as Drew:
[Tjhe Soviets would be deterred from conventional aggression by
Pershing 2 missiles on the land mass of Europe but would not be
deterred by Polaris missiles off the European coast. Only when one
sets it down on paper does this argument's specious nature become
clear. It implies that what counts in the Soviet mind in deciding how
to retaliate against a nuclear attack is not what target was hit or
what damage the missile did or even what the politico-military situa-
tion was, but only whether the delivery system was labelled "stra-
tegic" or "intermediate." This flies in the face of repeated Soviet
warnings that they will make no such nice distinctions. The argu-
ment has the intellectual ring of a theological debate at the Univer-
sity of Paris circa AD 1250.1
General Rogers' response to this point of the zero-zero advocates is
that:
although the Russians can discriminate between the launching of
land-based ballistic missiles and the launching of submarine-based
ballistic missiles, they cannot tell whether those being launched from
submarines are part of the Supreme Allied Commander's limited
inventory or from the American or British strategic nuclear inven-
tory. Thus, they cannot know whether the West has began an all-out
nuclear
attack.
1
3
To SACEUR, it is important whether it is his attack or that of the com-
mander of the Strategic Air Command and, unlike Schultze, he believes
that this will be of interest to the Soviets too.
In any case, as zero-zero moved toward the status of fait accompli, the
tendency among Maintainers-and, indeed, Couplers as well-was to
accept it and get on with the job. General Rogers' successor as SACEUR,
General John Galvin, in a sense contradicted Rogers when, according to
the Baltimore Sun, he said:
that the defense of Western Europe would be possible without U.S.
medium-range nuclear missiles but that they should not be removed
too rapidly. "I am talking about years, not months."... General
Galvin welcomed the planned Soviet-U.S. treaty.'
3 7
1
3Charles L. Schultze, "Decouping Dubious Arguments Against Arms-Control Agree-
ment,- Los Angees Times, May 9, 1987, Part V, p. 3.
'"Rogers, "Why Compromise Our Deterrent Strength in Europe?"
1
x
7
"Goneral urges 'years, not months' to remove missiles," Baltimore Sun, September
16, 1987, p. 6.
155
General Galvin was, of course, being a good soldier; had he not been will-
ing to be a good soldier after Rogers' revolt, he would not have become
SACEUR.
In fact, once it became clear that the agreement was going to be signed,
Maintainers and Couplers alike fell into line. Falling into line had two
implications for both schools, and one more specifically for the Couplers.
It meant taking additional arms control steps seriously so that the next
time the West could make proposals in its own thought-through security
interests rather than playing a political game with the Soviets and its own
electorates. And it meant taking steps to strengthen the Alliance in the
new environment created by Gorbachev.- In addition, for many of the
Couplers, it meant reexamination of the concept of European security in a
European context.
SUMMARY: MAINTAINER RECOMMENDATIONS
The Maintainers may constitute a tighter School of Thought than do
the Couplers; at least, given the American nationality that is used here to
define them, they all speak the same language, and this is not a trivial
consideration. Nonetheless, they present a wide range of views in the
NATO debate. (In other parts of the overall arms debate, they constitute
three schools on Third World policy and two in the strategic nuclear
debate.)
1
38 It may thus be surprising that the Maintainers do reach a con-
sensus on a set of policy recommendations, based on the three points sug-
gested at the beginning of the report: No Early Use, stronger conven-
tional capabilities, and maintaining the commitment to NATO.
Further, the Maintainer consensus, for all the similarities between
their debate and that of the Couplers, ends up differing from that of the
Couplers, certainly in emphasis, to some degree in viewpoint. In the fol-
lowing list, the relevant Coupler points, as reported in Sec. III, are sum-
marized in italics below each Maintainer point.
The Maintainers come together not to unanimity, but to consensus, on
five broad policy recommendations:
The Alliance structure should remain as it is. European moves
toward a "second pillar" are acceptable and perhaps even desir-
able, but not important enough to contemplate restructuring an
Alliance that has maintained the peace.
(Europe should begin serious movement toward forming a second
pillar.)
'383w Levine, The Arm. Debate and the Third World: Have We Learned from Viet-
nam?, and The Strategic Nuclear Debate.
d
156
" NATO should strive for stronger conventional capabilities even if
it takes more money, and the European members of the Alliance
should contribute a larger share of that money.
(Larger expenditures on conventional forces may have to be put up,
at American insistence.)
" Nuclear deterrence in Europe is necessary but very dangerous,
and a central task of the Alliance is to raise the threshold.
(Nuclear deterrence is basic to the defense of Europe and must not
be eroded.) This is the most basic difference between the two
schools.
" The United States has worldwide reponsibilities, including some
in support of West European as well as American vital interests.
If the Europeans will not participate, they should compensate,
and surely they should not complain.
(There is danger in the United States being diverted to the rest of
the world.)
" Arms control, both nuclear and conventional, is important to
security policy and world peace.
(The West European view is more suspicious, particularly of agree-
ments between the superpowers, but this may change in the wake of
zero-zero, insofar as it concerns conventional arms control in
Europe.)
Some of these differences are marginal, some, like that over the thresh-
old, more substantial. But what both sides of the Atlantic continue to
agree on has been captured by Thomson's words that the: "solidarity of
the Alliance... is the most vital element of deterrence." And deterrence,
for Couplers and Maintainers alike, remains essential for world peace and
Western civilization.
VII. EPILOG
(1) Western publics are becoming increasingly allergic to
nuclear weapons and will become increasingly aware that
NATO relies on the early use of nuclear weapons in response
to nonnuclear attacks. (2) NATO has no revolutionary plan
for implementing conventional force improvements or for
bold innovative conventional arms control proposals which
could combine to eliminate its reliance on the early first use
of nuclear weapons. (3) NATO faces a Soviet leader-
whatever his long run intentions may be-who appears will-
ing, in the parlance of the American card game called poker,
to "call NATO's bet and up the ante."
-Senator Sam Nunn, Chairman,
Armed Services Committee,
United States Senate
1
These developments of the defense policy of the United
States and that of the Soviet Union are not new. For the
first time, however, they are turning toward convergence.
The denuclearization that serves the military interests of the
Soviet Union responds to a yearning on the part of American
public opinion and of President Reagan. It facilitates the
starting up of strategic defense. The inevitable reduction for
budgetary reasons of United States conventional forces may
help the Soviet Union accentuate the decoupling between
Europe and America. This convergence of interests provides
a real impetus to the ongoing developments.
-Deputy Frangois Fillon, Chairman,
Committee on National Defense and Armed Forces,
French National Assembly
2
We have, without doubt, reached another "perilous moment in the
history of the alliance." Although this is indeed a major turning point,
it is no more than that; it is neither an end of the Alliance nor is it a
radical new beginning, for example, of a separate European alliance.
Nonetheless, new Soviet tactics and perhaps objectives are forcing
NATO to reexamine both its internal structure and its negotiating pos-
ture, which may result in structural political and military changes in
lSenator Sam Nunn, Speech to the DMS Symposium on Industrial Cooperation
within NATO, Brusels, April 13, 1987, p. 3.
'Frangois Fillon, 1988-1992: Les Rdlations Franco-Ailemandes en Mature de Difense,
Journes Parlementaires du R.P.R.-Bordeaux, September 1987 (mimeographed speech).
157
A
the Alliance-perhaps a Kissinger-like rebuilding, perhaps a new
arms-control-driven conventional posture. But the restructuring is
likely to end up with the same key members of the Alliance, a similar
incompletely defined flexible posture, and many of the same disagree-
ments.
The Epilog is more personal and less objective in its intent than the
body of the report. It uses my own logic and interpretations rather
than the quotations that have supported the major analysis. There are
two reasons for this. First, it is difficult to capture a rapid change in
mid-flight and predict its direction; NATO is changing rapidly, and
quotations on current events that are fresh in the spring may be
obsolete by the fall. Second, for the same reasons of rapid current
change and examination of the future, this section depends much more
than the earlier ones on unattributable conversations, although the
analysis is based primarily on the research presented in the previous
sections.
Our Soviet opponent, who inspired the defense mechanism that
became the Alliance and who has defined its existence for 35 years, has
suddenly changed at least his tactics and perhaps his objectives. This
has been received with worry and skepticism on both sides of the
Atlantic, among both the American Maintainers and the European
Couplers, as illustrated by the opening quotations from American and
French legislators in corresponding positions.
Senator Nunn reflects a broad American consensus in remaining
agnostic about Gorbachev, "whatever his long run intentions may be,"
and in suggesting that we had better get our act together. Nunn con-
centrates on arms control negotiations, both because he foresees little
in the way of unilateral improvements in Alliance posture, and because
he doubts that the arms control poker game will end with the double-
zero agreement (nor can we or should we pick up our chips and go
home). But central to the Senator's concerns is the fear that public
opinion may send arms control off in its own self-propelled direction.
As put by another American Maintainer, James Thomson: "The arms
control challenge to the Alliance is, first and foremost, to recreate a
viable security concept and rally public support around it.... Only
when the Alliance has recreated its security consensus will our leaders
be able to lead public opinion to support a sound arms control policy."
3
3
James Thomson, "The Arms Control Challenge to the Alliance," Address to the
North Atlantic Assembly in Plenary Session, Oslo, September 25, 1987, p. 1. Thomson
had seen INF as an important part of a "viable security concept" and he was concerned
that arms control agreements, including the one removing INF as well as new proposals,
have been springing up without consideration of NATO's overall security needs.
mm mm
m m
~
i m
__
m
_ 1>Ii I [
A I
dI
150
Deputy Fillon is less representative of European Couplers than
Senator Nunn is of American Maintainers, although Fillon's belief that
threatening change comes as much from the United States as it does
from the Soviet Union does represent a strong French undercurrent.
Although less than a West European consensus, this view is widespread
enough that it will have to be dealt with by Americans and Europeans
who want to preserve the Alliance. Fillon's context is an argument for
greater Franco-German defense cooperation. It illustrates one version
of within-the-West adaptation to the changes of the late 1980s.
These two types of adaptation--changes in the ways in which the
Alliance deals with the opponent, and changes in the political/military
structure of the Alliance itself-come together into Thomson's "secu-
rity concept." My belief is that his goal, "to recreate a viable" concept,
is likely to be achieved by a NATO that is not too dissimilar from the
one that has existed through the late 1980s.
Central to my contention is an assertion that the primary require-
ment for adaptation stems much more from outside the Alliance-the
Soviet Union-than from American isolationist, ethnic, budgetary, or
any other internal imperatives. This is, admittedly, an American view,
in distinct disagreement with M. Fillon's point that we as much as the
Russians are causing the upset. But even though I am not in great
sympathy with the off-hand way in which President Reagan has fre-
quently made and implemented foreign policy, I believe that many of
the U.S. actions that have disturbed Fillon and other West Europeans
have been adaptations by existing mechanisms to new stimuli, rather
than structural changes initiated by pressures from within the United
States or any other part of the Alliance. True, President Reagan was
erratic before Gorbachev (and so was President Carter); since Gor-
bachev, the erraticism has been reflected in Reykjavik and other
responses to the Soviet Union, but they remain responses, not first
causes. And there is a good chance that the next president of the
United States will be less erratic.
Most recent evidence indicates that internal Alliance structures
remain stable. As a result, the Alliance is adapting nonradically to the
most recent radicul changes in Soviet attitudes and actions; the "sub-
jective alliance" remains subjective. Further radical changes in Soviet
behavior can be expected, however, and the variables that we can
manipulate should be directed toward preserving the internal stabilities
while adapting them to the new externals. The result is consistent
with Nunn's and Thomson's prescriptions of a type the next American
administration is likely to take seriously.
.4!.
160
CURRENT FACTS AND INTERPRETATIONS
In understanding the external changes of the late 1980s, and
NATO's ongoing and future adaptations to these changes, it is impor-
tant to separate facts-statements with which no debater would
disagree-from interpretations of those facts. In the following listing,
the facts are italicized and then followed by my interpretations of those
facts and their relevance.
The most important fact is that Ronald Reagan will not be
president of the United States after January 20, 1989. Another
fixed point on the electoral calendar is the French presidential
election of 1988. Not quite as certain, but likely, is that current
German and British governments will continue at least until elec-
tions in 1991 or 1992.
Paradoxically, both the near-term changes and the delays in
this electoral calendar tend toward stability within the Alliance.
The American election will have two effects. First, both Euro-
pean Couplers and many American Maintainers have viewed
not only President Reagan but President Carter before him as
large sources of instability. The litany that begins with Carter's
inconstancy on the neutron bomb and continues through the
"evil empire," SDI, Libya, Reykjavik, and, in some views, zero-
zero, has been an upsetting one. Further, Europeans know few
of the initially announced presidential candidates in either
party, and this worries them; the American most Couplers
would feel comfortable with, Senator Nunn, was not among the
initial candidates. Nonetheless, most of the candidates in both
parties strongly favor NATO, and the defense and foreign pol-
icy advisors the successful candidate will depend on are likely to
include old pro-NATO hands. And all indications are that this
time around the electorate is looking for stability in foreign pol-
icy, with erraticism at asubstantial discount.
This is likely to be reinforced by the other effect of the Ameri-
can elections: They will take place on a fixed schedule and
should slow down American initiatives and responses to Soviet
initiatives on Europe. (Negotiations over U.S.-Soviet strategic
arms controls may slow down less, but the possibility of such
controls is far less upsetting to West Europeans than is the
chance of further rapid changes on the continent.) For most of
1988, the American election campaign will make radical
changes difficult; this will be reinforced by the Senate debate
over ratification of zero-zero. Then, for at least part of 1989,
gt. .
iI
161
the shakedown period for the new president will cause further
decision delays (unless he uses his traditional 100-day honey-
moon period for NATO initiatives, which, in the light of domes-
tic issues and festering foreign policy problems elsewhere, seems
unlikely). All this means that the headlong momentum of the
zero-zero negotiations will be broken. Perhaps it will also mean
that through 1989 the United States and the other members of
the Alliance will take the time to think through just what it is
they want from multilateral negotiations and unilateral deci-
sions.
The French elections are even earlier than those in the United
States, but national security has not been an electoral issue in
recent years, and although the French consensus may be shift-
ing, perhaps toward a tighter arrangement with Germany, it
remains a tight consensus. Few French think of NATO policy
as an issue in the 1988 elections.
In Britain and in Germany, the existence of stable government
majorities and the unlikelihood of national elections before the
early 1990s suggest that competition for office will not be a
major destabilizing factor. (Elections in the states of the
Federal Republic will continue to have some effect on national
policy, however, as they did in 1987 when losses in some states
apparently played a role in modifying Chancellor Kohl's opposi-
tion to zero-zero.) In any case, the electoral calendar means
that the left-wing parties feared by some American Maintainers
are unlikely to have a chance at governing. Further, the major-
ities within the British and German left remain strongly and
explicitly pro-NATO, even if not in a form liked by many other
Couplers or by Americans; and it is suggested in both countries
that the left will have to moderate even more if it wishes to
regain political power. None of this is meant to imply that pol-
itics and Alliance policy will be completely dissociated, particu-
larly in Germany, but at least imminent elections will not be an
exacerbating factor.
One final point should be made about national politics and
NATO. Even the closest of allies have difficulties in under-
standing the politics of their partners. This is most evident in
Coupler misunderstandings of American politics: the tendency
to confuse Kristol and Krauss's drive to get out of NATO with
Kissinger and Brzezinski's desire to strengthen the Alliance
through restructuring, for example. But it is also evident from
.I-'-
162
the fears in France and elsewhere of a German tendency to
recreate Mitteleuropa, a possibility quickly dismissed in all Ger-
man political quarters.
Budgetary and other economic pressures on US. defense spend-
ing will remain strong.
No deus ex machina is in sight to reverse the unacceptable
American budget deficit. Nor, lacking the external push of an
"extended period of substantially increased East-West tensions,
clearly the fault of the USSR," that Thomson suggested would
be needed to goad the West into financing a conventional
buildup, will taxes or other devices take the pressure off the
defense budget. Additionally, the need to reverse the flow of
trade deficits from the Reagan years will add other economic
pressures and may also sour economic relations between the
United States and its NATO allies. Difficult trade problems,
badly handled, may be the major threat to the Alliance in com-
ing years.
Some of the early effects of these phenomena were reflected in
Representative Schroeder's 1987 proposals to force burden-
sharing." Schroeder considered running for president but
ultimately chose not to; also in 1987, a much more serious can-
didate, Senator Bob Dole (Rep., Kan.) began to mention
burden-sharing and troop drawdown in his campaign speeches.
The discussion here suggests that serious consideration of uni-
lateral drawdown will at least be postponed while negotiated
NATO/Warsaw Pact decreases seem a real possibility; but this
is not a sure thing, and should conventional negotiations fail to
produce an agreement, budgetary considerations will renew uni-
lateral pressures. In any case, budget-induced decreases in the
number of American troops in Europe, seem more possible over
the longer run. Even if numbers are reduced, however, this will
not necessarily be a first step toward complete withdrawal of
the troops or of the commitment they represent.
The European members of NATO have officially accepted the
zero-zero agreement.
Stated this way, such official acceptance is not only factual; it
is the obvious reaction to a fait accompli. Nonetheless, the
degree of acceptance has gone beyond the obvious. Whether for
4
patricia Schrogder.
: ~ '... '
I
168
political reasons or for psychological reasons beyond the scope
of this analysis, necessary official acceptance has brought with
it more real acceptance than might have been expected. In con-
trast to Secretary Shultz's tense Brussels reception when he
reported to his fellow foreign ministers in closed session on his
April 1987 return from Moscow with the first real intimations
of the zero-zero agreement, both his September reception with
the agreement in hand and his November meeting with the
final draft were warm and supportive far beyond official
requirements. This is true even of the French, although
Fillon's undercurrent of suspicion about the United States
remains strong.
One fairly straightforward interpretation is that the changes,
brought about by Gorbachev's innovative approaches to the
West, in a structure of relationships under which Western
Europe had grown prosperous and secure over a 30-year period,
were of course unsettling. West European fears of direct Soviet
attack had been close to zero for twenty years; a parallel lack of
political fears had been confirmed by Brezhnev's failure to
prevent the installation of the INF missiles. Gorbachev's
changes could hardly improve this secure European comfort;
therefore they disturbed it. Once zero-zero became a fact, how-
ever, many Couplers who had been dubious began to see some
good in it-a far more substantial Soviet warhead reduction
than American, potential future economic rapprochement, even
greater security at lower levels of armaments if agreements did
not go all the way to denuclearization. Natural conservatism
about a system that had worked well began to give way once the
system was forced to change. All this was strongly reinforced
by resonance, once many American officials realized that the
West Europeans were in serious danger of being alienated, and
once many Europeans realized that continued protesting could
help bring about the U.S. decoupling that was their central fear
about zero-zero in the first place.
Nonetheless, dissidence from the overall acceptance of the
changes does still exist among the European Couplers.
Explicit dissidence is less prevalent than individual ambiv-
alence. The doubts that had existed are more likely to have
been internalized than satisfied. The statement of Fillon, the
conservative-coalition chairman of the National Assembly's
defense committee, provides sufficient evidence of continued
t ,/
164
dissidence, at its strongest in France. It is almost nonexistent
in Britain, where the few initial doubters of zero-zero rapidly
accepted the fait accompli and where the changes that are tak-
ing place are attributed to the Soviet Union or sometimes to
the Germans or the French, but not to the United States. And,
in contrast to the French, the Germans became substantially
less dissident after they had accepted the agreement than
before. Regardless of some still-negative feelings about zero-
zero, and regardless of whether their own political analysis
"blames" the Americans or the Russians, there is no payoff for
the Germans in further alienating the United States, and this is
recognized in all Coupler quarters. This is not to deny that the
experience has moved the Germans toward greater interest in
cooperation with the French, however.
* Moves toward a stronger "European pillar" for NATO, in partic-
ular a stronger Franco-German security arrangement, have proli-
ferated.
The Franco-German maneuvers in the summer of 1987, and the
initial planning for a Franco-German brigade, for a Franco-
German military planning group, and for a Franco-German
helicopter all provide evidence. Outside of the coupling of the
two continental powers, even the British talk more about the
pillar than they did before zero-zero. The pace of Franco-
British discussions of cooperative utilization of their two
independent nuclear forces has also accelerated. And Europe-
ans, particularly French, point to the fact that it was the
Western European Union that coordinated the European con-
tribution to minesweeping and other functions in the Persian
Gulf crisis of 1987.
It must be stressed, however, that this movement is for a
stronger pillar to strengthen the Alliance, not a parallel
arrangement outside the Alliance that would weaken it. The
parallel alternatiy, which is occasionally discussed at least as a
fallback position based on fears like Fillon's about American
abandonment, is not acceptable to the Germans or the British,
or even to official French policy. Indeed, the recent movement
toward "pillarism" has been directly proportional to the weak-
ening of "parallelism," and it is only after the initial zero-zero
fears about U.S. decoupling began to subside that the West
European movement began to take on new seriousness. None
of this was very clear in Washington, however, where the
. . ... .
165
Reagan administration was schizophrenic about change within
European NATO: One portion of the administration welcomed
the pillar as a possible support for burden-sharing, while
another deplored the potential parallelism (and perhaps the
potential loss of American domination of the Alliance). What
should still concern NATO advocates on both sides of the
Atlantic, however, is that negative resonance, between Europe-
ans who huddle together in fear and Americans who fear the
huddling, could help turn the pillar into the parallel.
What movement has taken place is still highly symbolic. The
circle has not been squared; the difference between the German
desire for a full French commitment on the Elbe and the
French reiteration of independent control over their nuclear
weapons has not been resolved, nor have the other differences
and suspicions between the two nations. The dilemma of the
Franco-German brigade-how the German battalions can
remain within the integrated NATO military structure while
the French battalions stay outside-has been resolved by draw-
ing the German component from territorial forces not under
SACEUR's command; but this solution is not available for the
active divisions that make up much the greatest part of the
Federal Republic's forces.
Zero-zero has provided new impetus for movement in an area
where movement had seemed to cease from 1983 to 1987. But
the movement has also stopped short of solving those issues of
doctrine and national interest that have thus far prevented it
from going beyond symbolism. If, on the American side of the
Atlantic, either the stasis of an election year or a sudden rush
of international political wisdom should prevent further clumsy
irritants and negative resonances, that may well slow down any
further movement toward parallel structures.
The final fact is the one with which this Epilog began: The
Soviet Union is changing. The change in Soviet external policy
may be tactical or strategic, malign or benign in intent, good or
bad for the good guys. It may be short or long run. But the
indubitable fact is that change is taking place, fast.
The Couplers and Maintainers sections on "The Opponent"
indicated the breadth of the debate over the difference Gor-
bachev has made. What is beyond challenge is that he has
made a difference. Soviet acceptance in 1987 of the changes
that led to the zero-zero agreement-intrusive inspection and
v''L -
j-.-..~~ ~~~~~~~ -.- --- --- - - 0kZf.0
(!
166
extremely asymmetrical reductions, for example-were not
predicted and, indeed, seemed impossible two years earlier. Nor
is it likely, or even possible, that the Soviet Union will revert to
the Brezhnev-Andropov-Chernenko era, any more than Brezh-
nev reverted to Stalin. Were Gorbachev to be overthrown by
the military or by old-liners in the Communist Party, peres-
troika, restructuring, could not be re-restructured back to the
1970s. Externally, the "tough" Soviet policies that led to the
SS-20s, which led (in part) to the INF, could return. But the
economic failures and the political failures in Europe (the
failure to prevent the installation of INF) and elsewhere
(Afghanistan) would remain.
A Soviet return to overt hostility would have ironic implications
for NATO. In many ways it would be comforting. The Alli-
ance was built on Soviet hostility, and a return to such hostility
might seem to facilitate a return on our side to the old familiar
ways rather than the upsets of the last few years. Further,
because the economic and political problems of the Soviet
Union and the Warsaw Pact would remain unsolved by the
means that had failed to solve them in the past, the opponent's
renewed hostility would be weakened. The trouble is that
Europe "can't go home again." The chief comfort for the West
from the pre-Gorbachev Soviet Union was that, hostile as it
might have been, it was clearly unwilling to go to war in Europe
or, since the Berlin crises of the early 1960s, risk war. A
renewed hostility, plus weakness, plus a new leadership anxious
to restore Soviet positions could be a very dangerous combina-
tion. Innate Western conservatism has mourned the loss of the
old pre-Gorbachev stabilities. But they are lost; a new conser-
vatism should cherish the ostensibly nonhostile instabilities of
the late 1980s, because hostile instabilities would be even worse.
Suppose that Gorbachev remains and continues to pursue his
line of internal perestroika and external radical surprises. What
are the implications for the West? The central theme must
continue to be Christoph Bertram's caution about the Soviet
Union's "profoundly ambiguous nature for a very long time to
come." It is difficult to think up changes in our negotiating
positions or our unilateral postures that we should make even if
we "trusted" the Soviets. Nor do those who advocate measures
to strengthen Gorbachev's faction come up with specific propo-
sals that depend on our ability to manipulate the internal
dynamics of Soviet politics. Some of their arms control and
l I
167
trade suggestions might be useful in any cae, but not demon-
strably for within-the-Kremlin political reasons. What differ-
ence, then, should the fact of Soviet change make for Western
positions? The answer lies not in our postures but our prepara-
tions: Soviet ambiguities should not allow us to accept what
would otherwise be unacceptable; but Soviet activities should
force us to treat seriously what was never serious before because
it was never possible. The agenda is wide open, and we should
not again be caught with an arms control proposal such as
zero-zero, put forth in the sure knowledge that it was unaccept-
able to the other side.
ADAPTATIONS
NATO's adaptations to the brave new world of post-zero-zero must
take place in two arenas: within the Alliance and in the relationship
between the Alliance and the Warsaw Pact. Together, they will be
governed by the creation or the absence of Thomson's "viable security
concept."
Within the Alliance
The discussion of within-the-Alliance adaptations starts with three
premises about the next several years:
* The central premise is that whatever happens in negotiations
with the Pact, and indeed whatever happens with or to Gor-
bachev, the Soviets will not turn very much more hostile than
they had been in the Brezhnev-Andropov-Chernenko years.
* A Soviet reversion back only as far as the hostilities and suspi-
cions of those years would be insufficient to relax the budgetary
and other constraints on substantial increases in NATO capa-
bilities; that would take at least a return to the real military
threats that apparently ended with the Berlin and Cuban crises
of the early 1960s.
* The current sort of "benign" Soviet attitudes will not call forth
within-Alliance responses greatly different from those that
would have been produced by Brezhnev-style hostility; Western
suspicions about the Soviets remain too great, and shifts in
NATO posture will depend on the translation of Soviet atti-
tudes into acceptable mutual arms control agreements.
.... I .,. ... . ,
,.. A , .L
'
i
168
Given these three premises, one major pressure and one powerful
constraint will govern NATO's unilateral adaptations to zero-zero.
The pressure is the fear, felt mostly in Europe but shared resonantly
by many American Maintainers, that zero-zero removes part of
NATO's nuclear counterbalance to the Pact's strong conventional
superiority, thus leaving us dangerously exposed at the lower levels.
The West Europeans further fear that the United States will strip,
away more of the links that couple conventional defense to the Ameri-
can strategic nuclear deterrent; this fear is not widely shared in the
United States. The constraint on both sides of the Atlantic, however,
is that neither the budgets nor the economies of the United States or
the European members of the Alliance will permit substantial expendi-
ture increases to correct the new exposures stemming from zero-zero.
The zero-zero pressure may call for two types of unilateral Alliance
adaptations within the budgetary constraints: restoration to NATO of
some of the nuclear capability lessened by removal of the INF missiles
and reduction of the conventional imbalance by increasing the capabili-
ties of the Alliance.
On the nuclear side, several proposals are based on reposturing of
American weapons:
" Replacing the land-based INF missiles with sea-based cruise
missiles with ranges that can reach the USSR, dedicated to
NATO and under the control of SACEUR (insofar as the INF
missiles and other American nuclear weapons have been under
the control of SACEUR, which means under the ultimate con-
trol of the president of the United States).
5
" More dependence on nuclear-capable aircraft, particularly the
F-111, based in Europe. This is likely to run up against the
arms control objection to dual-capable aircraft: Controlling
escalation will be difficult if an F-111 can take off in times of
crisis or conventional combat without the enemy knowing
whether it is carrying a conventional or nuclear load.
Other proposals involve British and French weapons:
* Some of these are vague or symbolic. The Franco-British dis-
cussions of targeting, for example, are partly in response to the
impetus of zero-zero, but how they would relate to the replace-
ment of the INF deterrent is unclear.
5Se, for example, Christoph Bertram, "Trade Europe's Land Missiles for Seaborne,"
Los Arges Times, May 11, 1987, Section II, p. 5.
m ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ , ''pl .. mm mmwmm
" Some are more concrete but quite uncertain and long run. The
French, for example, are developing an aircraft-carried missile
called Air-Sol de Moyen Porte (Air-Ground Middle Range),
and there is some talk of building into Longue Portte, long
enough to reach the Soviet Union, possibly in collaboration
with the British.
" Some are more radical, for example Jean d'Aubach's proposal
for "juxtaposition'
of the French and British capabilities."
6
Their radicalism makes them unlikely except perhaps under
some combination of renewed Soviet hostility and substantial
U.S. withdrawal. They will become even loss likely as West
Europeans realize that zero-zero is not necessarily or particu-
larly the first step down the "slippery slope" to full denucleari-
zation of the American commitment.
One proposal not heard from European Couplers is for an independent
German nuclear capability; the only debaters to uuggest this are Ameri-
can Withdrawers such as Layne. The Germans do, however, impose
constraints on solutions designed to compensate for the deterrent loss
of INF. For one thing, they oppose missiles with ranges so short that,
launched from West Germany or its allies beyond the Rhine, they can
only fall on Germans of the Federal Republic or the Democratic
Republic. This has some important implications for arms control
negotiations; so far as unilateral Alliance posture is concerned, it would
preclude any buildup of short-range nuclear systems to compensate for
the loss of the intermediate-range missiles. This would be unlikely in
any case, however: Couplers as well as Maintainers generally agree
with Congressman Aspin that the short-range weapons are the least
stable; independently of zero-zero, the Alliance has moved toward cut-
ting back at least on nuclear artillery and mines.
In addition, German government and other Coupler fears of the
peace movement make very unlikely any compensatory buildup of new
or new-seeming nuclear weapons that could provide a visible symbol
around which the movement could mount demonstrations like those in
opposition to the original installation of the Pershing II missiles in the
early 1980s. This is a major reason for failure, during the early-1987
negotiations over the Short-Range Intermediate Nuclear Force category
in which the Soviets had many missiles and NATO had almost none,
of the proposal by some CDU Germans for NATO to build up toward
some agreed ceiling rather than zeroing out the category on both sides.
The CDU did not want to face the internal political consequences of an
eSee p. 46.
i4
j, *J
i
i m m
iB mm m m amm i-' s '
I
170
arms control agreement that increased nuclear weapons. And it is why
similar post-zero-zero compensation is unlikely.
What remains for unilateral Alliance nuclear compensation for the
assumed loss of INF deterrence within the political, budgetary, and
other constraints is largely symbolic. It may include sea-launched mis-
siles dedicated to NATO and capable of reaching Soviet territory, but
it is unlikely to include vessels or missiles that were not on the water
or the drawing board anyhow. It may include aircraft, but it seems
unlikely to include aircraft with major new nuclear delivery capabili-
ties, at least not based in Germany. And in any case, such unilateral
compensation may well be overtaken by new arms control proposals
and perhaps agreements.
The possibilities for unilateral restoration of the conventional bal-
ance may be less constrained politically than the nuclear possibilities,
but they are more constrained by economics. The importance of
increased conventional capabilities has been recognized since 1952, the
budgetary constraints have been recognized just as long, and this part
of the debate has changed very little. The several pre- and post-zero-
zero quotations from General Rogers and others advocating increases
fall within a classic NATO literary genre. And unless the taxpaying
electorates of the NATO nations become far more frightened of the
Soviet military threat than they have been in recent years, they will
continue to come to naught.
Some of the suggested budget-constrained solutions-the technologi-
cal changes, the deep strategies, and the defensive ones-have been dis-
cussed. In general, no breakthroughs of strategic conceptualization
seem likely, and most expert analysis treats the technological possibili-
ties in terms of jam tomorrow, but never today. Perhaps Western sci-
ence and engineering can right the conventional balance within fixed
budgets, but at best the case is not proven.
Similar constrained possibilities for conventional improvements lie
in the mild post-zero-zero acceleration of Franco-German cooperation.
The cooperation does little to relax the budget constraints; the French
have increased military budgets, but the lion's share has gone to
improvement and modernization of their nuclear forces. Joint Franco-
German planning may lead to greater military effectiveness, but that
would be marginal and could be counteracted by the failure to mesh
semi-integrated Franco-German forces into the integrated NATO
effort. And although sub rosa reintegration of French forces, were it
possible, would surely increase the Alliance's conventional capabilities,
most of the computations that still lead to unfavorable estimates of the
balance have already counted French forces.
171
The most serious aspect of Franco-German cooperation may lie in
the prospective realm of "What if American troops did leave?" The
one surest effect of zero-zero on the conventional balance, however, has
been the resonant delaying of any potential drawdowns of U.S. forces.
After the 1984 defeat of the Nunn Amendment, the pressure became
less; and in April 1987 Senator Nunn announced himself conditionally
satisfied about progress to date.
7
But both Nunn's spring statement
and the similarly timed resolution of the House of Representatives
eschewing withdrawals from Europe were conditioned by Maintainer
resonance to the initial strong negative reactions of the West Euro-
peans to zero-zero. Predictably, budgetary and economic pressures will
renew the drive within the United States for more European burden-
sharing or American drawdowns in Europe; they are likely to
strengthen in the new administration if the arms control dynamic has
not superseded the unilateral pressures. But perhaps the most impor-
tant effect of zero-zero in improving the conventional balance has been
some postponement of any American moves that could have caused
further deterioration.
The prospects for unilateral NATO restoration of the nuclear-
conventional deterrent balance disturbed by zero-zero thus do not
appear very promising. It might be argued that the disturbance has
been trivial-that deterrence was overwhelming before zero-zero and
remains overwhelming after. In fact, that argument will be made in
the final, most opinionated, portion of this Epilog. This does not
imply that we should cease striving for better deterrence or more sta-
bility, but substantial unilateral measures seem unlikely.
Arms Control
That leaves arms control. A frequently heard view is that stated by
U.S. Ambassador to the Federal Republic Richard Burt: "Arms control
cannot in itself redress the imbalance of conventional forces in
Europe."
s
The trouble is that arms control may not be the solution, but
it may be the only solution. The prospects for unilateral solutions
seem so thin that even if Burt is right, arms control may be the worst
solution except for all the others, to paraphrase Churchill.
Post-zero-zero arms control possibilities fall into three categories.
Controls on U.S. and Soviet strategic missiles are outside the scope of
this analysis, but they do have an important implication for NATO.
7
SM p. 118.
81ichard R. Burt, "An Increased Emphasis on Conventional Forces: Problems and
Possibilities," in Thomson and Nerlich.
m%
172
To the extent that the negotiations, revolving around 50 percent reduc-
tions in offensive missiles and trades against SDI, take the center stage
after the signing of zero-zero, the pressure will be off immediate next
steps in Europe. This will enable almost all Couplers and most Main-
tainers to breathe a sigh of relief; NATO officials and analysts would
like the time to think about the more complex military and political
issues of arms controls in Europe. As has been suggested, the Ameri-
can electoral calendar may also help provide that time; how well it will
be used is another issue.
The other two arms control categories, parallel to those for unilat-
eral actions, cover nuclear and conventional controls in Europe. (Con-
trols on chemical weapons, sometimes considered separately, are sub-
sumed here in the conventional category. Both sides apparently want
such controls, but major technical problems of verification must be
solved.)
In the nuclear realm, it is not clear what controls might come next.
From the NATO viewpoint, fears of sliding down the slippery slope to
denuclearization might suggest that the best additional controls in the
immediate post-zero-zero future would be no additional controls, other
than some unilateral winnowing out of short-range systems for stability
purposes. In addition, many in NATO want to negotiate controls on
short-range nuclear weapons in conjunction with conventional arms
controls.
Things are not that simple, however. For many reasons, the Ger-
mans in particular want to press on, and have proposed negotiations in
the next lowest range category. (The zero-zero agreement does away
with all missiles in Europe down to 500 kilometers in range; the next
lowest takes it down to 100. The German proposal is sometimes
characterized as a "third zero," but in fact it is for a thinning out in
that range, not a zeroing out.) One reason for the German thrust is
purely political: In 1987, the CDU lost several elections in the states,
partly, they believe, because of Chancellor Kohl's dragging his feet on
zero-zero, and the party and the Chancellor want to seize the initiative
on arms control. In addition, there is real concern among many in the
Federal Republic that the remaining missiles in Europe can fall only on
East or West Germans: "The shorter the range, the deader the Ger-
mans." But many German officials and analysts subordinate that
argument to the point that the existing balance in that range category
strongly favors the Warsaw Pact, and reductions would thus serve
NATO's interests. What is contemplated is a negotiated rebalancing in
the down-to-100 range, a unilateral winnowing below that level, and
more deterrent stress on the F-111s and perhaps sea-based missiles.
The German position has concerned some others in the West because
173
it seems to be avoiding denuclearization by denuclearizing, but that is
in part because of the incorrect belief that what is being proposed is
the third zero.
Some Couplers on the German left still suggest denuclearized zones,
but these proposals received no new impetus from zero-zero and are
not being considered by current NATO governments. In addition, in
his Brussels speech Senator Nunn mentioned a tradeoff of a nuclear
No First Use pledge by NATO against a breaking up of major tank
concentrations by the Warsaw Pact,
9
but this was apparently intended
primarily rhetorically and has not been taken as seriously as the con-
ventional arms control proposals in the same speech. In general, out-
side of Germany, the attitude of Couplers and Maintainers alike has
been that it might be best to digest zero-zero before moving on to addi-
tional nuclear controls in Europe.
The feeling has been quite different on conventional controls. For
one thing, the possibility of having to respond to major Soviet propo-
sals or even unilateral withdrawals of one sort or another, soon after
completion of zero-zero, has concentrated more attention in this area.
More important, however, the added stress put on the conventional
imbalance by the perceived lessening of nuclear deterrence due to
zero-zero, plus the thought that in the Gorbachev era agreements to
help right the balance might just be possible, have led many in NATO
to treat conventional controls far more seriously than in the past.
First, however, it has been necessary for NATO to get its own
bureaucratic act together. Before 1987, negotiations over conventional
controls in Europe took place in two different and partially competing
arenas. In Vienna, starting in 1973, leisurely discussions over force
reductions had kept many diplomats and bureaucrats engaged in a
pleasaut atmosphere, without going anywhere. These negotations were
"bloc-to-bloc" between the Alliance and the Pact, and as such were
eschewed by the French who did not wish to be considered part of the
NATO bloc. Starting somewhat later, Stockholm hosted multi-country
negotiations on "confidence-building" controls (rather than reductions)
over conventional weapons. These did bring about some small but
important agreements, particularly concerning observations of
maneuvers. The zero-zero prod toward real consideration of force
reductions as well as other controls, however, has led NATO to
attempt to put together a unified "mandate" about what to talk about
and where, as well as a unified position on the substance of the con-
trols.
9Num, Speech to the DMS Symposium.
--
I* 4 I ',. . ::. i ., . "
174
The Alliance has arrived at no substantive position, but the debate
has opened. In the initial stages it has not divided Couplers from
Maintainers. Both schools include debaters who emphasize the possi-
bilities for conventional controls, and both include debaters who
emphasize the dangers and constraints; both contain Sovietologists
who stress the Kremlin's real need for cutbacks, and both contain
Sovietologists who stress their tactical use of negotiations. All this is
as it was before zero-zero. What is new, however, is the belief that it
might happen this time, and it had better be taken seriously.
The opening debate has produced opening proposals. One of the
earliest and best-known was that made by Senator Nunn in the same
Brussels speech. He suggested a 50 percent reduction in U.S. and
Soviet forces deployed on the territory of their allies; because the
Soviets had many more such, this would amount to an asymmetric
reduction of something like two American divisions against 13 dif-
ferently structured and smaller Soviet divisions. These forces were to
be drawn far enough back that it would take equal time for them to
redeploy back to their previous positions.'
0
The speech also discussed a
chemical weapons ban and the need for verification. The Nunn con-
cept was later provided with hypothetical detail (without consultation
with the Senator) by defense analyst Philip Karber who, strikingly for
someone who had previously concentrated on NATO's conventional
needs, waxed enthusiastic about what he saw as changed Soviet posi-
tions that "would have been hailed as a breakthrough if raised during
the 13 fruitless years of the preceding Mutual and Balanced Force
Reduction negotiations."
1
Karber's elaboration of the Nunn plan
covered manpower, tanks, artillery and other weapons, distances of
withdrawal, details of verification, and so forth. The details themselves
were not crucial at this stage; what is important is that first-string
analysts of conventional defenses had begun to analyze such details.
Another such effort, widely circulated throughout NATO, was by
James Thomson and Nanette Gantz of RAND, who suggested that
"substantially asymmetrical" Warsaw Pact and NATO reductions
would be necessary to avoid worsening the conventional balance. Their
estimated breakeven point was a 5:1 ratio of Pact to NATO reductions,
based on the existing 1987 balance. Even a 4:1 or 3:1 ratio, according
to their calculations, would actually turn the balance even further
against the Alliance than it had been up until that time. Further, ini-
tial reductions should be large; small assymetrical reductions would not
help. All of these estimates were applied to "division equivalents,"
'
0
Nunn, Speech to the DMS Symposium, pp. 12-13.
"Philip A. Karber, "Conventional Arms Control Options,' in Thomson and Nerlich.
175
taking account of the differences in what NATO and the Pact include
in a ground-forces division; Thomson and Gantz also stressed the
importance
of tanks and artillery.
12
The 5:1 ratio for NATO and Pact reductions is consistent with
Nunn's differently calculated 13:2 for U.S. and Soviet forces. The
Thomson-Gantz report was hardly noncontroversial, however.
Although asymmetry had been a feature of the zero-zero agreement,
Thomson himself suggested that the Soviets were unlikely to accept
such overbalanced proposals at the conventional level. This induced
both a State Department response that we should try anyhow (with
which Thomson would not disagree), and a comment by Jonathan
Dean that he was too pessimistic.?
3
Many more calculations remained
to be done before a Western position aimed at stabilizing the conven-
tional balance in Europe could be designed to compensate for whatever
loss of deterrence had stemmed from zero-zero. And, after the Western
position was designed and agreed to by the allies, negotiations with the
opponent could then begin.
CONCLUSION
Where, then, should we be going? Some of my views may be clear
from the foregoing discussion, in which I have made less of an attempt
at objectivity than in the analysis in the previous sections. Four cen-
tral assertions summarize the viewpoint:
The security of Western Europe is quite safe and stable after
zero-zero; it was quite safe and stable before zero-zero. The
Soviet military threat and even the political shadow of "Fin-
landization" are and have been extremely remote. Under
Khrushchev, under Brezhnev, and under Gorbachev, this secu-
rity has been based largely on "existential" nuclear deter-
rence-on the Soviet fear that so long as nuclear weapons
existed in Western arsenals, the risk of escalation was too great
to allow any military adventurism that might threaten Western
Europe. In spite of the American Withdrawers, neither the
current administration nor any electable next administration
has any intention of proceeding down the slope to denucleariza-
tion of Europe, and existential deterrence will remain. It might
12
James A. Thomson and Nanette C. Gantz, Conventional Arms Control Revisited:
Objectives in the New Phase, The RAND Corporation, N-2697-AF, December 1987, p. 13.
13See "Study Says Troop Pact Is Not Likely," New York Times, November 12, 1987,
p. 3.
176
well remain anyhow, based on the U.S. strategic nuclear capa-
bility, even if no American weapons were on European soil; it
might remain, based on British and French weapons, even if the
United States dissociated itself completely from NATO.
o West European safety and stability are safest and most stable
within NATO, however; and the United States belongs within
the Alliance for reasons of both national interest and national
empathy. In spite of the strong statements about existentialism
made in the last paragraph, European nervousness about self-
preservation is understandable. The Alliance is subjective, and
this subjectivity is important and important to understand.
That "resonance" governs much of the Maintainer reaction to
Europe and much of the Coupler reaction to the United States
is no bad thing. If the Alliance is central to European stability,
and if European stability is an American vital interest, then a
lot of effort on both sides of the Atlantic should be going into
preserving the Alliance.
e On the American side, this effort should include both a contin-
ued nuclear commitment manifested in ways clearly understood
by our allies and our adversary, and a continued substantial
troop presence on the continent. On the European side, it
should include both a relaxation of the regular pressures on the
United States to express it6 commitment by the particular sym-
bolic gesture of the year, and an understanding that not every
change in nuclear or conventional posture is a first slide down
one or another slippery slope.
a Gorbachev makes a difference. His seductive advances to the
West may not be sincere, or his colleagues may inhibit him, or
they may ultimately remove him. Even so, it would be very dif-
ficult for the Soviets to get back to where they were. Were they
to try, economics might make them less of a threat than they
were before. A weak, hostile, heavily armed Soviet Union, how-
ever, might be very dangerous. The only sure thing is change.
None of this suggests that we should "trust" the Soviets any
more than we did before. We should not arrive at agreements
that depend in any substantial measure on such trust. And we
should know by now that we are far too clumsy to "help" Gor-
bachev by playing internal Kremlin politics; we should have
learned something by trying to play internal Iranian politics.
Soviet changes may mean that substantial new opportunities
are opening for the kinds of agreements that we have ostensibly
been striving for for 35 years-agreements that do not depend
on trust and that are based on the asymmetrical reductions we
7 I777
177
require. Such agreements can provide stronger and cheaper
guarantees for West European security and American interests.
We need time to digest zero-zero, and the American presidential
election may give us this time. What should be done with that time is
sober and serious Alliance consideration of what we want from negotia-
tions with the Soviets, and how we might get it. What should not be
done with that time is shouting across the Atlantic, negative resonance
building into a crescendo that could make the Alliance into a victim of
its own paranoia and a potential victim of Soviet exploitation. Such
amplifying negative resonance seemed to be starting during the early
part of the 1987 zero-zero negotiations; it seemed to die down after the
fait accompli, but it could return. In particular, although all sides
recognize the need for a stronger European pillar for the Alliance, nei-
ther European rhetoric about the need for a parallel alliance because of
American unreliability nor U.S. reactions that treat pillar-building as
inherently anti-American are very helpful.
One specifically American contribution to Alliance comity would be
to keep NATO out of the 1988 presidential campaign. It may be that
in the next years, economic pressures will force a drawdown of Ameri-
can troops in Europe or a substantial resharing of the burdens. It may
also be, however, that burdens can be reduced through negotiations
between the Alliance and the Pact. That can best be explored under a
new American presidency. It can best be explored if the "officials and
analysts" whom this report is about use 1988 and part of 1989 to figure
out where the United States and the other Alliance partners should be
going from here.
My own bottom line is that it is entirely possible, and even likely,
that the Soviets are open to agreements that enhance the security of
both sides. If so, the process--understandably worrisome to those who
see the structures that have provided peace and stability for the last 25
years suddenly changing-could nonetheless end up being exhilarating.
If not, and if we exert proper care, neither the Alliance nor East-West
stability need suffer. In either case, the North Atlantic Treaty Organi-
zation will remain a necessary keystone for many years.
.
' b
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Abshire, David M., in Atlantic Institute for International Affairs, 1986.
Abehire, David M., Speech to the Southern Center for International
Affairs, reprinted in the Congressional Record, Senate, June 20, 2
1984.
Acheson, Dean G., "The Premises of American Policy," Orbis, Fall
1959.
Adomeit, Hannes, "The Political Rationale of Soviet Military Capabili-
ties and Doctrine," in Strengthening Conventional Deterrence in
Europe: Proposals for the 1980s, The European Study Report of
the Special Panel, Westview Press, Boulder, 1985.
Alford, Jonathan, "Perspectives on Strategy," in Steinbruner and Sigal.
Altenburg, Wolfgang, "Adapting Security Partnerships to Contem-
porary Requirements," in Atlantic Institute for International
Affairs.
Alternative Defence Commission, Defence Without the Bomb, Taylor
and Francis, London, 1983.
"America betrayed by its friends," Chicago Sun-Times, August 4, 1987,
p. 23.
American Friends Service Committee, Speak Truth to Power, Philadel-
phia, 1955.
Aspin, Les, "But Battlefield Nuclear Weapons Should Go First," Inter-
national Herald Tribune, April 28, 1987 (reprinted from the Wash-
ington Post).
Atlantic Institute for International Affairs, Managing Entry into the
21st Century, Paris, 1986.
Barnet, Richard J., "Reflections: The Four Pillars," New Yorker,
March 9, 1987.
Barre, Raymond, "Foundations for European Security and Coopera-
tion," Survival, July/August 1987.
Berger, Markus, "La Force de Dissuasion Frangaise et la Securit6 de la
R6publique F6d6rale d'Allemagne," in Kaiser and Lellouche.
Berlin Green Party, Thesen fur eine gruene Deutschlandpolitik, January
1984, in Reader zum deutschlandpolitischen Kongress der
GRUENEN, March 1984.
Bertram, Christoph, "Europe and America in 1983," Foreign Affairs,
Winter-Spring 1984.
Bertram, Christoph, "Europe's Security Dilemmas," Foreign Affairs,
Summer 1987.
179
. J :., . ..
.. , , Z:?, 4-
_ y, , ., y, . . ; .', -
180
Bertram, Christoph, "Trade Europe's Land Missiles for Seaborne," Los
Angeles Times, May 11, 1987, Section II.
Bingham, Joan, "The Resurgence of Europe," Nashville Tennessean,
July 19, 1987, Outlook Section.
Bonnart, Frederick, "Dangers of Divorce," NATO's Sixteen Nations,
February-March 1987.
Bonnart, Frederick, "NATO Is an Alliance that Should Not be Dis-
banded," International Herald Tribune, September 24, 1986.
Bonnart, Frederick, "West Europe Ponders Soviet Aims," International
Herald Tribune, May 6, 1987.
Boyer, Yves, "The Development of the Strategic Rationale for United
States Forces in Europe," paper presented to the Conference on
Conventional Forces, Wiston House, England, March 1987.
Bramall, Lord, House of Lords Official Report, Parliamentary Debates
(Hansard), Her Majesty's Stationery Office, London, 25 March
1987, Columns 194-195.
Brandt, P., and H. Ammon, "Patriotism von Links," in Venohr.
Brumberg, Abraham, "Moscow, Seen Clearly," New York Times, Sep-
tember 2, 1987.
Brzezinski, Zbigniew, "The Future of Yalta," Foreign Affairs, Winter
1984/1985.
Brzezinski, Zbigniew, Game Plan, The Atlantic Monthly Press, Boston
and New York, 1986.
Brzezinski, Zbigniew, "Peaceful Change in a Divided Europe," in
Thomson and Nerlich, 1988.
Brzezinski, Zbigniew, and William Griffith, "Peaceful Engagement in
Eastern Europe," Foreign Affairs, July 1961.
Buckley, William F., Jr., "Generals Can Be Right," National Review,
July 31, 1987.
Bull, Hedley, "European Self-Reliance and the Reform of NATO,"
Foreign Affairs, Spring 1983.
Bundy, McGeorge, "The Bishops and the Bomb," New York Review of
Books, June 16, 1983.
Bundy, McGeorge, Morton H. Halperin, William W. Kaufmann,
George F. Kennan, Robert S. McNamara, Madalene O'Donnell,
Leon V. Sigal, Gerard C. Smith, Richard H. Ullman, and Paul C.
Warnke, "Back from the Brink," Atlantic Monthly, August 1986.
Bundy, McGeorge, George F. Kennan, Robert S. McNamara, and
Gerard Smith, "Nuclear Weapons and the Atlantic Alliance,"
Foreign Affairs, Spring 1982.
Burt, Richard, "Why American Forces Should Remain in Europe,"
International Herald Tribune, March 25, 1987 (reprinted from
Washington Post).
i
181
Canby, Steven L., "High-Tech, High-Fail Defense," Los Angeles Times,
September 16, 1985.
Canby, Steven L., "New Conventional Force Technology and the
NATO-Warsaw Pact Balance: Part I," in International Institute
for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper 198.
Carrington, Lord, "Picturing Soviets as Sirens over European
Landscape," Los Angeles Times, September 27, 1987, Part V.
Carrington, Lord, "Requirements for Stable Security Relationships," in
Atlantic Institute for International Affairs, 1986.
Carter, Ashton, B., John D. Steinbruner, and Charles A. Zraket (eds.),
Managing Nuclear Operations, The Brookings Institution, 1987.
Chirac, Jacques, "Allocution du Premier Ministre devant l'Assembl6e
de l'U.E.O.," Paris, December 2, 1986, in Ministire des Affaires
.trangires, Direction des Affaires Politiques, Questions Politico-
Militaires, 2ime Semestre 1985, Ann6e 1986.
Chirac, Jacques, "Discours devant l'Assembl6e Nationale-
Developpements touchant la Dffense," in Minist~re des Affaires
Jktrangeres, 1986.
Chirac, Jacques, Discours du Premier Ministre Devant l'Institut des
Hautes Etudes de Defense Nationale, September 12, 1986.
Conine, Ernest, "Europe May Find It Can Go It Alone," Los Angeles
Timea, July 13, 1987, Part II.
Cordesman, Anthony H., "Alliance Requirements and the Need for
Conventional Force Improvements," in Thomson and Nerlich.
Cox, Arthur Macy, "Revising U.S. Perceptions of Gorbachev's New
Thinking," Los Angeles Times, March 8, 1987, Part V.
d'Aboville, Benoit, "La France, la RFA et le Contrble des armements:
des Maltendus i la Cooperation," in Kaiser and Lellouche.
d'Aubach, "To Gather Europe for its Defense," Commentaire, Spring
1987. (Mimeo. trans. by Michel Klein.)
de Rose, Franqois, "Inflexible Response," Foreign Affairs, Fall 1982.
de Rose, Franvois, "NATO's Perils-and Opportunities," Strategic
Review, Fall 1983.
* Dean, Jonathan, "Military Security in Europe," Foreign Affairs,
Autumn 1987.
Dean, Jonathan, Watershed in Europe: Dismantling the East-West Mil-
itary Confrontation, D. C. Heath, Lexington, Mass., 1987.
DeLauer, Richard D., "Emerging Technologies and Their Impact on
the Conventional Deterrent," in Pierre, 1984.
Drell, Sidney D., Philip J. Farley, and David Holloway, The Reagan
Strategic Defense Initiative: A Technica, Political, and Arms Con-
trol Assessment, Stanford University Press, 1984.
!~
182
Drew, Elizabeth, "Letter from Washington," New Yorker, May 4, 1987.
Dumoulin, J6rome, "Paris-Bonn: ce que d6mandent lee Allemands,"
l'Express, February 17-March 5, 1987.
Dunn, Keith A., and William 0. Staudenmaier (eds.), Military Strategy
in Transition, U.S. Army War College, Carlisle Barracks, Pa.,
1983.
Dunn, Keith A., and William 0. Staudenmaer, "The Retaliatory
Offensive and Operational Realities in NATO," Survival,
May/June 1985.
Fillon, Frangois, 1988-1992: Les Rglations Franco-Allemandes en
Mati~re de Defense, Journ6es Parlementaires du R.P.R.-
Bordeaux, September 1987 (mimeo.).
Flynn, Gregory, and Hans Rattinger (eds.), The Public and Atlantic
Defense, Rowman and Allenheld, Totowa, N.J., 1985.
Freedman, Lawrence D., The Price of Peace: Living with the Nuclear
Dilemma, Firethorn Press, London, 1986.
Freedman, Lawrence D., "U.S. Nuclear Weapons in Europe: Symbols,
Strategy and Force Structure," in Pierre, 1984.
Gallois, Pierre, The Balance of Terror, Houghton Mifflin, Boston, 1961.
Gates, David, "Area Defense Concepts," Survival, July/August 1987.
Gelman, Harry, Gorbachev's Policies Toward Western Europe: A Bal-
ance Sheet, The RAND Corporation, R-3588-AF, October 1987.
"General urges years, not months, to remove missiles," Baltimore Sun,
September 16, 1987.
Genscher, Hans-Dietrich, "Toward an Overall Western Strategy for
Peace, Freedom and Progress," Foreign Affairs, Fall 1982.
Gladwyn, Lord, House of Lords Official Report, Parliamentary Debates
(Hansard), Her Majesty's Stationery Office, London, 25 March
1987, Columns 190-191.
Gnessoto, Nicole, "Le Dialogue Franco-Allemand depuis 1954: Pa-
tience et Longeur de Temps," in Kaiser and Leflouche.
Goldsmith, Jimmy, "Le Levier de la D6fense," L'Express, February
17-March 5, 1987.
Goodpaster, General Andrew J., General Franz-Joseph Schulze, Air
Chief Marshall Sir Alasdair Steedman, and Dr. William J. Perry,
Strengthening Conventional Deterrence in Europe: A Program for
the 1980., The European Security Study Report of the Special
Panel, Westview Press, Boulder, Colo., 1985.
Grosser, Alfred, The Western Alliance, Vintage Books, New York, 1982.
Halperin, Morton H., Nuclear Fallacy: Dispelling the Myth of Nuclear
Strategy, Ballinger, Cambridge, Mass., 1987.
Haltzell, Michael, "Germany Has Its Own Priorities," Los Angeles
Times, August 31, 1986, Part V.
...... ... ... ++
+ +i~i +
+
....
183
Hamilton, Andrew, "Redressing the Conventional Balance: NATO's
Reserve Military Manpower," International Security, Summer
1986.
Hassner, Pierre, "La Cooperation Franco-Allemande: Achille Immobile
A Grand Pas?" in Kaiser and Lellouche.
Hassner, Pierre, "L'Europe entre lea Atats-Unis et 'Union Sovietique,"
Commentaire, Spring 1986.
Healey, Denis, "A Labour Britain, NATO and the Bomb," Foreign
Affairs, Spring 1987.
Heisbourg, Frangois, "Conventional Defense: Europe's Constraints and
Opportunities," in Pierre, 1986.
Heisbourg, Frangois, "Cooperation en Matiere d'Armements: Rien
n'est Jamais Acquis," in Kaiser and Lellouche.
Heisbourg, Frangois, "Europe at the Turn of the Millenium: Decline or
Rebirth?" Washington Quarterly, Winter 1987.
Heisbourg, Frangois, "Europe, USA et Option 'Double Zero,'" Libera-
tion, April 17, 1987.
Heisbourg, Frangois, "R6alit6s et illusions," Le Monde, 1985.
Hoagland, Jim, "A Horse Race in France," Washington Post, April 3,
1987, p. A2.
Hoffman, Stanley, "The U.S. and Western Europe: Wait and Worry,"
Foreign Affairs, Spring 1984.
Hoffman, Wilfried, "Is NATO's Defence Policy Facing a Crisis? NATO
Review, August 1984.
Hoist, Johan Jorgen, "Denial and Punishment: Straddling the Horns
of NATO's Dilemma," in International Institute for Strategic
Studies, Adelphi Paper 205.
Hoist, Johan Jorgen, "Flexible Options in Alliance Strategy," in Johan
J. Hoist and Uwe Nerlich (eds.), Beyond Nuclear Deterrence,
Crane, Russak and Co., New York, 1977.
Hoist, Johan Jorgen, "Moving Toward No First Use in Practice," in
Steinbruner and Sigal.
Hoist, Johan Jorgen, "NATO and Northern Security," address at the
opening session of the Oslo International Symposium "Perspec-
tives on NATO and the Northern Flank," Akershus Castle,
August 10, 1986.
Hoist, Johan Jorgen, "Nordic Security Perspectives," address to Oxford
University Strategic Studies Group, All Souls College, March 10,
1987.
Hoist, Johan Jorgen, "Security and Low Tension in the Northern
Regions," lecture at a seminar arranged by the Advisory Council
on Arms Control and Disarmament of the Norwegian Govern-
ment, Bodo, 12 June 1986.
.,-
184
Hoist, Johan Jorgen, and Uwe Nerlich (eds.), Beyond Nuclear Deter-
rence, Crane, Russak and Co., New York, 1977.
Hough, Jerry F., "New Deal in Moscow," New York Times, February
13, 1987.
Howard, Michael, "Reassurance and Deterrence: Western Defense in
the 1980s," Foreign Affairs, Winter 1982-1983.
Howe, Sir Geoffrey, "The European Pillar," Foreign Affairs, Winter
1984-1985.
Huntington, Samuel P. (ed.), The Strategic Imperative: New Policies
for American Security, Ballinger, Cambridge, Mass., 1982.
Huntington, Samuel P., "The Renewal of Strategy," in Huntington,
1982.
Hyland, William G., "Reagan-Gorbachev III," Foreign Affairs, Fall
1987, p. 10.
International Institute for Strategic Studies, Power and Policy: Doc-
trine, the Alliance and Arms Controk Part I, Adelphi Paper 205;
Part II, Adelphi Paper 206; Part III, Adelphi Paper 207, London,
Spring 1986.
International Institute for Strategic Studies, New Technology and
Western Security Policy: Part II, Adelphi Paper 198; London,
Summer 1985.
Joffe, Joseph, "Cruisin' for a Bruisin': The INF Fallout," New Repub-
lic, October 5, 1987.
Joffe, Joseph, "Stability and Its Discontent: Should NATO Go Con-
ventional," Washington Quarterly, Fall 1984.
Johnson, A. Ross, The Impact of Eastern Europe on Soviet Policy
Toward Western Europe, The RAND Corporation, R-3332-AF,
March 1986.
Kaiser, Karl, and Pierre Lellouche (eds.), Le Couple Franco-Allemand
et la Defense de l'Europe, Institute Frangais des Relations Inter-
nationales (IFRI), Paris, 1986.
Kaiser, Karl, Georg Leber, Alois Mertes, and Franz-Joseph Schulze,
"Nuclear Weapons and the Preservation of Peace," Foreign
Affairs, Summer 1982.
Kaplan, Fred, "Analysts: Soviet force in Europe exaggerated," Boston
Globe, April 26, 1987.
Karber, Philip A., "NATO Doctrine and NATO Operational Priorities:
The Central Front and the Flanks: Part I," in International
Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper 207.
Kaufmann, William W., "Nonnuclear Deterrence," in Steinbruner and
Sigal.
Kaufmann, William W., "Nuclear Deterrence in Central Europe," in
Steinbruner and Segal.
Kennan, George F., "Containment Then and Now," Foreign Affairs,
Spring 1987.
Kiep, Walther Leisler, "The New Deutschlandpolitik," Foreign Affairs,
Winter 1984/85.
Kinnock, Neil, address to the National Press Club, Washington, D.C.,
December 4, 1986.
Kinnock, Neil, "How Labour Would Defend Britain," New York Times,
March 27, 1987.
Kissinger, Henry A., "Missiles: A Zero Option Is No Choice," Los
Angeles Times, April 5, 1987, Part V.
Kissinger, Henry A., "Redo NATO to Restore the Alliance," Los
Angeles Times, May 11, 1986, Part V.
Kissinger, Henry A., The Necessity for Choice, Harper, New York,
1960.
Kissinger, Henry, "A Plan to Reshape NATO," Time, March 5, 1984.
Koefoed, Ole, "Aspects of 'Defensive' Military System Discussed," Ber-
lingske Tidende, December 23, 1985.
Komer, Robert W., Maritime Strategy or Coalition Defense? University
Press of America, Lanham, Md., 1984.
Komer, Robert W., "Problems of Overextension: Reconciling NATO
Defence and Out-of-Area Contingencies: Part II," in Interna-
tional Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper 207.
Kondracke, Morton M., "Make 'em Pay," New Republic, October 12,
1987.
Krauss, Melvin, "It's Time to Change the Atlantic Alliance," Wall
Street Journal, March 3, 1983.
Krauss, Melvin, "Let Europe Negotiate with Gorbachev," Wall Street
Journal, March 6, 1987.
Krauss, Melvin, "Why Has Reagan Yielded to Europe?" New York
Times, January 6, 1987.
Krauss, Melvin, How NATO Weakens the West, Simon and Schuster,
New York, 1986.
Krell, Gert, "Reykjavik and After," Peace Research Institute, Frank-
furt, April 1987 (mimeo.).
Krell, Gert, INF, SDI, and Conventionalization: West German
Approaches to Defense and Dotente, paper for the PRIF-
University of California, Santa Barbara Conference on "Arms
Control in U.S.-West German Relations," Bad Homburg,
December 1-3, 1986.
Krell, Gert, Ostpolitik Dimensions of West German Security Policy,
Peace Research Institute, Frankfurt, December 1986 (mimeo.).
Kristol, Irving, "Foreign Policy in an Age of Ideology," National
Interest, Fall 1985.
186
Kristol, Irving, "Nuclear NATO: A Moment of Truth," Wall Street
Journal, July 9, 1987.
Kristol, Irving, "'Global Unilateralism' and 'Entangling Alliances,'"
Wall Street Journal, February 3, 1986.
Layne, Christopher, "Atlanticism Without NATO," Foreign Policy,
Summer 1987.
Layne, Christopher, "Deutschland Uber Allies," New Republic, Sep-
tember 28, 1987.
Lellouche, Pierre, L'Avenir de la Guerre, Mazarine, Paris, 1985.
Levin, Carl, press release announcing Beyond the Bean Count: Realisti-
cally Assessing the Conventional Balance in Europe, Senate Sub-
committee on Conventional Forces and Alliance Defense, Wash-
ington, D.C., January 20, 1988.
Levine, Robert A., The Arms Debate, Harvard University Press, Cam-
bridge, Mass., 1963.
Levine, Robert A., The Arms Debate and the Third World. Have We
Learned from Vietnam? The RAND Corporation, R-3523-
FF/CC/RC, May 1987.
Levine, Robert A., Public Planning: Failure and Redirection, Basic
Books, New York 1972.
Levine, Robert A., "The SDI Debate as a Continuation of History,"
CISA Working Paper No. 55, Center for International and Stra-
tegic Affairs, University of California, Los Angeles, March 1986.
Levine, Robert A., The Strategic Nuclear Debate, The RAND Corpora-
tion, R-3565-FF/CC/RC, October 1987.
Lewis, Flora, "The Doldrums at NATO," New York Times, July 27,
1987.
Lewis, Flora, "Rating 'Double-Zero,'" New York Times, September 27,
1987.
Lowenthal, Richard, "The German Question Transformed," Foreign
Affairs, Winter 1984/85.
MacMillan, Whitney, and Richard H. Ullman, "America's Self-Interest
in Helping Gorbachev," New York Times, October 7, 1987.
Middleton, Drew, "U.D.S. Is too Eager for Missile Pact with Soviets,"
Air Force Times, July 6, 1987.
Ministry of Defense of the Federal Republic of Germany, Weissbuch
1985.
Mitterand, Frangois, interview in Le Monde, July 31, 1980.
Moisi, Dominique, "As the Pillars of Postwar Stability Shake, Europe
Looks for Shelter," International Herald Tribune, April 4, 1987.
Moisi, Dominique, "U.S. and Soviet Images Shift in France," Los
Angeles Times, February 4, 1987, Part II.
*.~ 1,."
187
Monitor, "SDP Successor Generation Less Sympathetic to U.S., E.C.
Goals," Berlingske Tidende, April 28, 1986.
National Conference of Catholic Bishops, The Challenge of Peace:
God's Promise and Our Response, Washington, D.C., 1983.
"NATO's Central Front," The Economist, August 30-September 5,
1986.
Nerlich, Uwe, "Change in Europe: A Secular Trend?" in Daedalus,
Journal of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences, Winter
1981.
Nerlich, Uwe, "Conventional Arms Control in Europe: The Objec-
tives," in Thomson and Nerlich.
Nerlich, Uwe, "La force de la dissuasion nucl~aire fran~aise et la secu-
rit6 de la RFA," in Kaiser and Lellouche.
Netherlands Institute of International Relations, Clingendael, Conven-
tional Balance in Europe: Problems, Strategies and Technologies,
Zoetermeer, The Netherlands, May 11-13, 1984.
Nixon, Richard M., and Henry A. Kissinger, "To Withdraw Missiles
We Must Add Conditions," Los Angeles Times, April 26, 1987,
Part V.
Nunn, Sam, Speech to the DMS Symposium on Industrial Cooperation
Within NATO, Brussels, April 13, 1987.
O'Neill, Robert, Concluding Remarks to the Twenty-Ninth Annual
Conference of the International Institute for Strategic Studies,
Barcelona, September 1987.
Osgood, Robert, "Summation," in Netherlands Institute of Interna-
tional Relations, 1984.
Petersen, Nicolaj, "The Scandilux Experiment: Towards a Trans-
national Social Democratic Security Perspective," Cooperation
and Conflict: Nordic Journal of International Politics, March
1985.
Pfaff, William, "Europe: Toward Independent Defense?" International
Herald Tribune, April 19, 1987.
Pierre, Andrew (ed.), The Conventional Defense of Europe: New Tech-
nologies and New Strategies, Council on Foreign Relations, New
York, 1986.
Pierre, Andrew J. (ed.), Nuclear Weapons in Europe, Council on
Foreign Relations, New York, 1984.
Platt, Alan, Soviet-West European Relations: Recent Trends and
Near-Term Prospects, The RAND Corporation, R-3316-AF,
March 1986.
Record, Jeffrey, "Beyond NATO: New Military Directions for the
United States," in Record and Hanks, 1982.
i i - - -
188
Record, Jeffrey, and Robert J. Hanks, U.S. Strategy at the Crossroads.
Two Views, Institute for Foreign Policy Analysis, Inc., Cambridge
and Washington, D.C., July 1982.
Revel, Jean-Franqois, How Democracies Perish, Doubleday, Garden
City, 1983.
Risse-Kappen, Thomas, "'Final Respite' or "'Unconditional No'? The
Church and Questions of Peace in the Federal Republic of Ger-
many," Bulletin of Peace Proposals, Vol. 15, No. 3, 1984.
Rogers, Bernard, "The Atlantic Alliance: Prescriptions for a Difficult
Decade," Foreign Affairs, Summer 1982.
Rogers, Bernard, "NATO's Strategy: An Undervalued Currency," in
International Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper 205.
Rogers, Bernard, "Why Compromise Our Deterrent Strength in
Europe," New York Times, June 28, 1987.
Rosenfeld, Stephen S., "Go Slow on Glasnost," International Herald
Tribune, October 14, 1987 (reprinted from the Washington Post).
Ruehl, Lothar, "1982: La R6lance de la Cooperation Franco-
Allemande," in Kaiser and Lellouche.
Ruehl, Lothar, Mittelstreckenwaffen in Europa: Ihre Bedeutung in
Strategie, Rustungkontrolle und Bundespolitik, Nomos Ver-
lagsgesselschaft, Baden-Baden, 1987.
Safire, William, "Europe After NATO," New York Times, June 22,
1987.
Schelling, Thomas, The Strategy of Conflict, Harvard University Press,
Cambridge, Mass., 1960.
Schlesinger, James, "An American Perspective," speech reprinted in
the Congressional Record, June 20, 1984.
Schmidt, Helmut, "Saving the Western Alliance," New York Review of
Books, May 31, 1984.
Schmidt, Helmut, A Grand Strategy for the West, Yale University
Press, New Haven, 1985.
Schmidt, Peter, "Europeanization of Defense: Prospects of Con-
sensus?" The RAND Corporation, P-7402, December 7, 1984.
Schroeder, Patricia, "Burt's Right on One Thing: Allies Must Pay
More," International Herald Tribune, October 14, 1987 (reprinted
from the Washington Post).
Schultze, Charles L., "Decoupling Dubious Arguments Against Arms-
Control Agreement, Los Angeles Times, May 9, 1987, Part V.
Schulze, Franz-Joseph, "La Necessit6 d'une R6action de Dfense
Imm6diate et Commune," in Kaiser et Lellouche.
Schweigler, Gebhard L., "Anti-Americanism in Germany," Washington
Quarterly, Winter 1986.
V
... . . .N ,
' '
I
Siccama, Jan-Geert, "Rejoinder," in Netherlands Institute of Interna-
tional Relations, 1984.
Sloss, Leon, "The Roles of Strategic and Theatre Nuclear Forces in
NATO Strategy: Part II," in International Institute for Strategic
Studies, Adelphi Paper 205.
Social Democratic Party of Germany, Peace and Security, Resolutions
adopted by the Party Conference, Nuremberg, 25-29 August 1986.
Spulber, Nicolas, "Proof of Gorbachev Pudding Is in Soviet Tasting,"
New York Times, October 22, 1987.
Steinbruner, John D., and Leon V. Sigal (eds.), Alliance Security:
NATO and the No-First-Use Question, The Brookings Institution,
Washington, D.C., 1983.
Stratmann, K.-Peter, "The Coventional Balance of Forces in Central
Europe," in Netherlands Institute of International Relations,
1984.
Stratmann, Peter, "NATO Doctrine and National Operational Priori-
ties: The Central Front and the Flanks: Part II," in International
Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper 207.
Sutton, Boyd, John R. Landry, Malcolm B. Armstrong, Howell M.
Estes, and Wesley K. Clark, "Strategic and Doctrinal Implications
of Deep Attack Concepts for the Defense of Central Europe," in
Dunn and Staudenmaier, 1983.
Svec, Milan, "Let's Warm Up Relations with Eastern Europe," New
York Times, January 23, 1987.
Thomson, James, "The Arms Control Challenge to the Alliance,"
Address to the North Atlantic Assembly in Plenary Assembly,
Oslo, September 25, 1987. p. 1.
Thomson, James A., "Strategic Choices: Their Roles in NATO's
Defence Planning and Force Modernization, Part I," in Interna-
tional Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper 205.
Thomson, James A., and Nanette C. Gantz, Conventional Arms Control
Revisited: Objectives in the New Phase, The RAND Corporation,
N-2697-AF, December 1987.
Thomson, James, and Uwe Nerlich (eds.), Conventional Arms Control
and the Future of Europe, Westview Press, Boulder, Colo., 1988.
Valentin, Francois, "Cooperation Franco-Allemande dans le Domaine
des Forces Classiques," in Kaiser and Lellouche, 1986.
Venohr, W., (ed.), Die deutsche Enheit kommt bestimmt, Bergisch
Gladbach, 1982.
Voigt, Karsten D., "Nuclear Weapons in Europe: A German Social
Democrat's Perspective," in Pierre, 1984.
. . il ~ um~lll ,, -,C
190
Voigt, Karsten D., "Strategic Policy Options and the Implications for
Arms Control, Stability and East-West Relations," in Interna-
tional Institute for Strategic Studies, Adelphi Paper 205.
von Bulow, Andreas, "Defensive Entanglement: An Alternative Strat-
egy for NATO," in Pierre, 1984.
Warnke, Paul C., "An Abiding Love Affair with the Bomb," New York
Tines, August 13, 1987, p. 19.
Watt, David, "As a European Saw It," Foreign Affairs, Fall 1983.
Weinberger, Caspar W., "Facing Reality on NATO Security," Los
Angeles Times, September 13, 1987, Part V.
Williams, Phil, "West European Security after Reykjavik," Washington
Quarterly, Spring 1987.
Wohlstetter, Albert, "Au-dila de la strategie du pire," Commentaire,
Winter 1985-1986.
Wohistetter, Albert, "Nuclear Sharing: NATO and the N+1 Country,"
Foreign Affairs, April 1961.
Wohlstetter, Albert, "Swords Without Shields," National Interest, Sum-
mer 1987.
Wohlstetter, Albert, and Richard Brody, "Continuing Control as a
Requirement for Deterring," in Carter, Steinbruner, and Zraket.
Wrage, Stephen D., "U.S. Finds Itself Dealt Out of European Debate,"
Los Angeles Times, August 26, 1987, Part II.
X, "The Sources of Soviet Conduct," Foreign Affairs, July 1947,
reprinted in Foreign Affairs, Spring 1987.
., ..... ; ; ,

You might also like